Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n great_a holy_a see_v 3,964 5 3.2444 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27015 The safe religion, or, Three disputations for the reformed catholike religion against popery proving that popery is against the Holy Scriptures, the unity of the catholike church, the consent of the antient doctors, the plainest reason, and common judgment of sense it self / by Richard Baxter. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1657 (1657) Wing B1381; ESTC R16189 289,769 704

There are 43 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o catholic_a church_n c●l●_n trasubstantiation_n i_o confess_v also_o that_o under_o one_o 〈◊〉_d only_o whole_a and_o entire_a christ_n and_o the_o true_a savement_n be_v take_v i_o do_v constant_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n there_o detain_v be_v h●lp●●_n by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o also_o that_o the_o sai●●_n reign_v with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v and_o call_v upon_o and_o that_o they_o do_v offer_v prayer_n to_o god_n for_o m●_n and_o their_o relic_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v or_o honour_v i_o do_v most_o firm_o assert_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o mother_n of_o god-eve_a a_o virgin_n as_o also_o of_o other_o sai●●_n be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o keep_v and_o that_o due_a honour_n and_o vibration_n be_v to_o be_v give_v they_o i_o affirm_v also_o that_o the_o power_n of_o indulgence_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n a●_n that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v most_o wholesome_a to_o christian_a people_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n ●_o all_o church_n and_o i_o do_v promise_n and_o swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n successor_n of_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n chris●_n also_o all_o other_o thing_n deliver_v define_v and_o declare●_n by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n a●_n especial_o of_o the_o holy_a synod_n of_o trent_n i_o do_v with●●_n doubt_v receive_v and_o profess_v and_o also_o all_o thing_n contrary_a and_o all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o condemn_v by_o th●_n church_n and_o reject_v and_o anathematise_v do_v i_o i●_n like_o manner_n condemn_v reject_v and_o anathematise_v this_o ●rue_a catholic_a faith_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v sa●ed_v which_o at_o the_o present_a i_o do_v voluntary_o profess_v ●nd_v true_o hold_v the_o same_o will_v i_o take_v care_n to_o hold_v and_o confess_v entire_a and_o inviolate_a by_o god_n help_n most_o con●antly_o even_o to_o the_o last_o breath_n of_o my_o life_n and_o as_o much_o ●s_n in_o i_o lie_v to_o be_v hold_v teach_v and_o preach_v by_o ●hose_n that_o be_v under_o i_o or_o those_o who_o care_n belong_v to_o ●e_v in_o my_o office_n this_o i.n._n do_v promise_n vow_v and_o ●wear_v so_o help_v i_o god_n and_o these_o holy_a gospel_n of_o god_n so_o far_o the_o trent_n confession_n which_o i_o the_o ra●her_n recite_v that_o you_o may_v see_v what_o their_o religion_n be_v ●_o their_o own_o word_n and_o oath_n where_o you_o see_v also_o ●●at_a this_o be_v but_o a_o small_a part_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v moreover_o ●_o large_a as_o all_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o all_o other_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o holy_a canon_n of_o the_o impossibility_n and_o self-contradiction_n of_o which_o faith_n we_o ●hall_v say_v more_o anon_o so_o that_o i_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christianity_n but_o ●is_n additional_a leprosy_n which_o we_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o ●opery_n they_o believe_v this_o much_o more_o than_o we_o or_o a_o ●reat_a part_n more_o and_o by_o believe_v more_o they_o believe_v ●ss_n while_o they_o destroy_v the_o sound_a faith_n which_o they_o ●efore_o seem_v to_o profess_v 2_o for_o the_o next_o term_n to_o be_v explain_v salvation_n ●e_v mean_n by_o it_o principal_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o withal_o those_o beginning_n of_o it_o inclusive_o which_o we_o ●ve_v in_o this_o life_n consist_v in_o our_o justification_n adoption_n sanctification_n consolation_n and_o perse●erance_n 3._o by_o the_o term_n way_n we_o mean_v such_o necessary_a ●eans_n as_o be_v prescribe_v we_o by_o god_n for_o the_o attainment_n ●_o salvation_n either_o as_o to_o our_o belief_n or_o our_o affection_n and_o practice_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o do_v believe_v 4._o as_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n safe_a it_o signify_v that_o which_o be_v free_a from_o danger_n or_o which_o tend_v to_o a_o man_n welfare_n now_o here_o be_v a_o double_a safety_n considerable_a in_o doctrine_n answerable_a to_o a_o double_a danger_n first_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v safe_a from_o any_o sin_n in_o the_o way_n to_o salvation_n and_o so_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o popery_n be_v no_o safe_a way_n which_o lead_v to_o so_o much_o sin_n but_o that_o be_v not_o all_o that_o be_v here_o intend_a but_o it_o be_v another_o matter_n to_o be_v so_o deep_a in_o sin_n as_o not_o to_o be_v safe_a from_o the_o everlasting_a punishment_n but_o that_o salvation_n itself_o be_v endanger_v thereby_o and_o this_o we_o principal_o intend_v and_o whereas_o there_o be_v several_a degree_n of_o danger_n we_o mean_v that_o true_a popery_n hearty_o entertain_v and_o practise_v do_v leave_v but_o small_a probability_n if_o any_o possibility_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o any_o that_o do_v persevere_v impenitent_o therein_o to_o the_o end_n though_o you_o may_v see_v what_o i_o deny_v in_o what_o be_v already_o say_v yet_o for_o the_o great_a perspicuity_n i_o shall_v express_v my_o sense_n in_o these_o few_o proposition_n follow_v prop._n 1._o that_o christian_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v profess_v to_o believe_v be_v of_o itself_o without_o their_o corruption_n a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n prop._n 2._o whatever_o error_n be_v hold_v by_o papist_n or_o any_o other_o which_o do_v consist_v with_o a_o true_a practic●_n belief_n of_o the_o foresay_a christian_a doctrine_n which_o they_o confess_v and_o we_o be_v agree_v in_o those_o error_n sh●●●_n not_o exclude_v the_o erroneous_a from_o salvation_n prop._n 3._o the_o papist_n do_v not_o express_o in_o term_n and_o sense_n deny_v any_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n prop._n 4._o it_o be_v possible_a even_o practical_o to_o hold_v a_o error_n which_o by_o remote_a consequence_n contradict_v a_o fundamental_a truth_n and_o yet_o to_o hold_v that_o truth_n practical_o and_o so_o to_o be_v save_v for_o either_o all_o moral_a ●errots_n in_o theology_n as_o amesius_n think_v do_v contradict_v the_o foundation_n by_o consequence_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessary_a concatenation_n of_o truth_n or_o most_o at_o least_o prop._n 5._o there_o be_v some_o error_n so_o great_a that_o if_o they_o be_v cordial_o and_o practical_o hold_v will_v be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o cordial_a practical_a hold_v of_o the_o foundation_n which_o yet_o may_v be_v hold_v but_o speculative_o and_o notional_o in_o consistency_n with_o the_o cordial_a and_o practical_a belief_n of_o the_o fundamental_o and_o the_o person_n not_o know_v the_o contradiction_n may_v be_v save_v prop._n 6._o multitude_n of_o people_n while_o they_o take_v common_a term_n in_o divinity_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n do_v maintain_v proposition_n which_o by_o plain_a consequence_n if_o not_o direct_o contradict_v the_o fundamental_o according_a to_o the_o proper_a genuine_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n when_o yet_o in_o the_o sense_n as_o they_o mistake_v and_o misuse_v they_o in_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n even_o as_o many_o on_o the_o other_o side_n do_v hold_v the_o christian_a verity_n in_o word_n who_o in_o sense_n deny_v it_o prop._n 7._o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o many_o million_o of_o the_o laity_n among_o the_o papist_n if_o not_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o they_o do_v not_o cordial_o embrace_v the_o most_o of_o the_o popish_a corruption_n in_o doctrinal_n nor_o the_o most_o dangerous_a of_o they_o 1._o because_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v they_o and_o so_o can_v so_o much_o as_o speculative_o receive_v they_o it_o be_v not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o perhaps_o of_o many_o hundred_o among_o they_o that_o know_v all_o contain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n alone_o much_o less_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o council_n and_o canon_n and_o custom_n wherein_o they_o place_v their_o religion_n nay_o perhaps_o it_o be_v but_o few_o of_o their_o clergy_n that_o know_v this_o comparative_o so_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o implicit_a general_a belief_n that_o they_o can_v give_v to_o such_o canon_n as_o be_v unknown_a which_o be_v not_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o they_o as_o such_o 2._o because_o i_o hope_v among_o most_o or_o many_o of_o they_o they_o be_v first_o teach_v the_o creed_n the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o ten_o commandment_n or_o at_o least_o the_o creed_n and_o decalogue_n though_o the_o lord_n prayer_n be_v usual_o teach_v they_o in_o latin_a which_o contain_v the_o fundamental_o of_o christian_a faith_n and_o practice_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o hope_v that_o these_o be_v deep_o in_o their_o mind_n then_o any_o contradictory_n doctrine_n especial_o when_o they_o must_v have_v so_o
for_o the_o perfect_a or_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v this_o word_n only_o that_o we_o appeal_v to_o and_o desire_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o and_o the_o papist_n wilful_a decline_v of_o this_o trial_n and_o judgement_n do_v give_v any_o impartial_a observer_n sufficient_a cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o they_o take_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v against_o their_o cause_n or_o else_o why_o shall_v they_o not_o have_v as_o much_o confidence_n in_o it_o and_o commit_v their_o cause_n to_o it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o 2._o to_o run_v over_o every_o point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o they_o and_o prove_v our_o part_n by_o scripture_n will_v be_v a_o very_a easy_a work_n but_o it_o will_v make_v this_o disputation_n swell_v too_o big_a and_o it_o be_v do_v so_o large_o and_o often_o already_o by_o our_o writer_n that_o it_o be_v less_o necessary_a if_o any_o of_o they_o complain_v for_o the_o omission_n ●_o this_o part_n let_v he_o but_o assure_v i_o that_o he_o will_v stand_v t●_n the_o judgement_n of_o scripture_n and_o i_o shall_v quick_o a●●_n willing_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o he_o and_o go_v over_o th●●_n part_n of_o the_o task_n again_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v it_o su●●●_n to_o tell_v young_a student_n that_o amesius_n his_o bellarmi●●_n enervatus_fw-la have_v spoil_v all_o their_o cause_n of_o this_o defence_n and_o manifest_a scripture_n to_o be_v full_o against_o they_o i●_n a_o little_a room_n which_o may_v spare_v they_o the_o read_a o●_n many_o large_a and_o for_o the_o mere_a english_a reader_n mr._n ri._n bernard_n in_o his_o book_n call_v look_v beyond_o luther_n in_o his_o help_n annex_v to_o it_o have_v give_v a_o brief_a and_o effectual_a discovery_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n in_o a_o enumeration_n and_o proof_n of_o many_o of_o the_o point●_n in_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o which_o for_o brevity_n i_o refer_v they_o to_o in_o a_o word_n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a than_o that_o religion_n which_o agree_v with_o they_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o papist_n confess_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o major_n be_v plain_a in_o that_o scripture_n affirm_v of_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o furnish_v we_o to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o be_v write_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v and_o believe_v may_v have_v life_n in_o christ_n name_n etc._n etc._n joh._n 29.31_o 2_o tim._n 3.16_o 17._o of_o which_o we_o have_v say_v somewhat_o in_o a_o s●ort_a determination_n of_o that_o question_n by_o itself_o arg._n 2._o that_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n by_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n religion_n now_o call_v protestant_a be_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n save_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o major_n with_o reasonable_a man_n need_v no_o proof_n there_o be_v not_o many_o religion_n but_o only_o one_o that_o be_v a_o ●●fe_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n ●ent_v in_o and_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v undoubted_o that_o one_o god_n have_v not_o since_o take_v down_o ●hat_n religion_n and_o set_v up_o another_o and_o make_v ●hat_n way_n safe_a to_o we_o which_o be_v unsafe_a to_o they_o the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v the_o apostle_n and_o church_n in_o their_o day_n be_v save_v by_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v contain_v or_o express_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o that_o be_v the_o same_o with_o this_o which_o be_v call_v ●he_n protestant_n religion_n for_o proof_n whereof_o i_o refer_v you_o and_o offer_v as_o abovesaid_a yield_v once_o that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v the_o rule_n to_o judge_v by_o and_o the_o controversy_n will_v soon_o be_v end_v betwixt_o we_o and_o i_o need_v not_o to_o say_v but_o these_o two_o thing_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o point_n 1._o that_o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v that_o the_o affirmative_a or_o positive_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v here_o in_o england_n profess_v be_v not_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o negative_n be_v of_o which_o we_o shall_v consider_v further_o anon_o 2._o as_o it_o be_v the_o great_a care_n of_o the_o papist_n to_o keep_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o people_n account_v it_o the_o original_a of_o heresy_n to_o have_v they_o translate_v as_o arboreus_n and_o many_o express_o say_v and_o burn_v man_n to_o ash_n for_o read_v the_o scripture_n when_o god_n will_v burn_v they_o in_o hell_n if_o they_o obey_v they_o not_o which_o they_o be_v not_o like_a to_o do_v without_o know_v they_o so_o experience_n have_v convince_v they_o that_o where_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n be_v but_o permit_v there_o do_v our_o religion_n most_o increase_v and_o popery_n decay_v so_o that_o if_o this_o one_o mean_n be_v but_o permit_v in_o spain_n and_o italy_n as_o it_o be_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o in_o other_o part_n undoubted_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n will_v soon_o come_v down_o i_o say_v if_o they_o dare_v but_o permit_v man_n to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n they_o know_v this_o well_o enough_o or_o else_o they_o will_v never_o so_o torture_v poor_a christian_n by_o the_o inquisition_n for_o have_v a_o bible_n in_o their_o house_n they_o have_v sure_o some_o humanity_n in_o they_o as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o therefore_o can_v never_o go_v so_o exceed_v far_o beyond_o the_o turk_n in_o cruelty_n to_o christian_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o know_v their_o whole_a cause_n and_o kingdom_n be_v concern_v in_o it_o and_o if_o once_o scripture_n get_v in_o they_o be_v go_v in_o a_o word_n multitude_n of_o volume_n have_v already_o prove_v that_o scripture_n be_v against_o popery_n argu._n 3_o that_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n in_o which_o the_o church_n in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o first_o age_n at_o least_o be_v save_v but_o the_o church_n in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o first_o age_n at_o least_o be_v save_v in_o that_o catholic_a christian_a religion_n which_o now_o be_v call_v the_o reform_a or_o protestant_n religion_n therefore_o this_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o mention_v not_o the_o former_a age_n as_o if_o all_o other_o follow_v age_n have_v come_v to_o heaven_n by_o any_o other_o religion_n than_o the_o former_a but_o 1._o because_o in_o they_o alone_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o major_a proposition_n none_o can_v be_v save_v in_o it_o especial_o not_o so_o many_o age_n of_o the_o pure_a time_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n 2._o because_o some_o popish_a error_n begin_v among_o the_o worse_a sort_n of_o ambitious_a superstitious_a prelate_n to_o creep_v in_o betimes_o and_o popery_n itself_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n soon_o after_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v open_o establish_v about_o the_o thousand_o year_n and_o according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o great_a difficulty_n of_o salvation_n because_o more_o impediment_n but_o still_o those_o that_o be_v save_v be_v all_o save_v in_o and_o by_o the_o same_o religion_n of_o the_o former_a age_n and_o if_o they_o be_v save_v in_o any_o corruption_n yet_o not_o by_o it_o but_o from_o it_o or_o against_o it_o as_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a as_o it_o require_v a_o full_a volume_n of_o itself_o to_o produce_v the_o particular_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o we_o so_o be_v it_o already_o do_v in_o many_o volume_n and_o because_o the_o continual_a clamour_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v that_o antiquity_n be_v on_o their_o side_n i_o shall_v anon_o disprove_v they_o in_o the_o fundamental_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o in_o the_o follow_a disputation_n about_o their_o pretend_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n and_o in_o other_o particular_n desire_v they_o to_o give_v some_o reasonable_a answer_n to_o what_o be_v already_o allege_a by_o bishop_n usher_n dr_n field_n and_o many_o mor●_n of_o our_o writer_n before_o they_o expect_v we_o shall_v regard_v their_o vain_a immodest_a pretence_n and_o still_o let_v be_v be_v remember_v that_o for_o all_o the_o positive_a part_n of_o our_o religion_n they_o themselves_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n still_o hold_v it_o our_o religion_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o doubtless_o that_o be_v entertain_v by_o all_o the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o religion_n they_o be_v save_v argu._n 4._o that_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a
the_o determination_n of_o their_o church_n he_o must_v present_o not_o only_a believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o he_o believe_v before_o but_o do_v it_o also_o without_o doubt_v though_o they_o will_v confess_v million_o be_v save_v that_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n though_o not_o without_o doubt_v well_o but_o see_v what_o unity_n be_v procure_v by_o the_o addition_n of_o these_o new_a article_n to_o their_o creed_n the_o french_a doctor_n ascribe_v to_o his_o holiness_n that_o the_o say_v article_n may_v be_v take_v in_o several_a sense_n the_o one_o sense_n be_v heretical_a lutheran_n or_o calvinian_a but_o that_o be_v a_o sense_n that_o the_o word_n lawful_o use_v will_v not_o hear_v but_o only_o may_v malignant_o be_v fasten_v to_o they_o say_v they_o the_o other_o sense_n which_o be_v genuine_a and_o proper_a they_o def●nd_v themselves_o as_o true_a and_o as_o pertain_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n and_o as_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o molina_n and_o the_o adversary_n other_o maintain_v to_o be_v pelagian_a or_o semipelagian_a see_v here_o what_o the_o papist_n themselves_o now_o do_v implicit_o charge_v upon_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o by_o his_o express_a unlimited_a condemnation_n do_v malignant_o fasten_v a_o heretical_a sense_n on_o the_o word_n which_o proper_o they_o will_v not_o bear_v or_o else_o that_o he_o contradict_v augustine_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o anathematize_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o maintain_v the_o semipelagian_a heresy_n of_o molina_n and_o yet_o must_v we_o judge_v either_o their_o pope_n to_o be_v infallible_a or_o their_o church_n to_o be_v at_o such_o unity_n in_o faith_n as_o they_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a vulgar_a believe_v more_o of_o the_o like_a contention_n about_o his_o holiness_n determination_n you_o may_v see_v in_o tho._n whites_n appendicula_fw-la ad_fw-la sonum_fw-la buccinae_fw-la and_o franscus_n macedo_n his_o lituus_fw-la lusitanus_n in_o all_o which_o you_o may_v see_v that_o all_o the_o comfort_n that_o the_o poor_a dominican_n have_v leave_v they_o even_o their_o hope_n of_o salvation_n if_o they_o be_v papist_n indeed_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o pope_n speak_v one_o thing_n and_o mean_v another_o and_o that_o as_o white_a so_o merry_o say_v in_o so_o sad_a a_o matter_n the_o wise_a father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v necessitate_v for_o the_o appease_n of_o contention_n to_o grant_v the_o more_o turbulent_a party_n their_o word_n and_o the_o more_o obedient_a party_n their_o sense_n so_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v do_v all_o that_o he_o can_v to_o determine_v their_o controversy_n they_o will_v still_o say_v that_o he_o determine_v but_o the_o word_n nay_o he_o do_v but_o grant_v one_o party_n their_o word_n and_o not_o the_o meaning_n and_o so_o not_o only_a sense_n but_o bare_a term_n must_v be_v make_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o here_o you_o may_v see_v the_o great_a force_n of_o the_o papist_n argue_v for_o a_o necessity_n of_o a_o live_a judge_n to_o determine_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n because_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o ambiguous_a that_o each_o one_o will_v else_o wrest_v it_o his_o own_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v after_o so_o many_o year_n deliberation_n determine_v five_o short_a article_n so_o express_o and_o plain_o even_o when_o he_o do_v it_o of_o purpose_n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n as_o to_o make_v his_o learned_a doctor_n understand_v he_o but_o that_o each_o party_n do_v take_v his_o word_n to_o be_v either_o for_o or_o not_o against_o their_o opinion_n and_o hold_v their_o opinion_n as_o fast_o since_o his_o determination_n as_o before_o and_o so_o they_o do_v by_o augustine_n thomas_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n each_o party_n confident_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v of_o their_o side_n and_o may_v not_o god_n have_v the_o honour_n of_o speak_v as_o plain_o as_o the_o pope_n or_o thomas_n or_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o can_v we_o well_o be_v without_o the_o decision_n of_o such_o a_o judge_n as_o can_v speak_v so_o as_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o his_o great_a doctor_n himself_o so_o that_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o romanist_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v unfixed_a grow_v and_o mutable_a they_o may_v be_v one_o year_n of_o one_o religion_n and_o another_o year_n of_o another_o as_o please_v the_o pope_n a_o dominican_n may_v have_v be_v save_v at_o any_o time_n since_o the_o creation_n till_o may_n 31._o 1653._o when_o the_o pope_n determination_n be_v date_v but_o now_o they_o must_v all_o be_v damn_v for_o heresy_n there_o be_v a_o new_a way_n to_o heaven_n make_v 1653._o that_o never_o be_v before_o and_o for_o aught_o they_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a before_o their_o pope_n have_v do_v determine_v there_o may_v be_v five_o hundred_o article_n more_o in_o their_o creed_n so_o that_o for_o my_o part_n i_o desire_v not_o either_o to_o be_v shut_v out_o of_o heaven_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o every_o new_a pope_n nor_o to_o be_v of_o so_o uncertain_a and_o changeable_a a_o religion_n and_o i_o can_v think_v therefore_o that_o popery_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n arg._n 8._o that_o doctrine_n which_o derogate_v from_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o set_v the_o decree_n of_o man_n above_o it_o enable_v they_o to_o contradict_v its_o most_o express_a institution_n be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o major_n be_v unquestionable_o true_a among_o true_a christian_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a i_o shall_v only_o give_v you_o three_o instance_n of_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n because_o i_o intend_v not_o to_o be_v too_o particular_a leave_v i_o be_v too_o large_a the_o first_o be_v their_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n both_o to_o be_v insufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v but_o one_o part_n of_o god_n word_n and_o tradition_n the_o other_o part_n and_o also_o to_o be_v no_o word_n of_o god_n at_o all_o to_o we_o till_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n do_v authoritative_o determine_v it_o so_o to_o be_v or_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n determination_n but_o of_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o and_o shall_v do_v more_o in_o another_o dispute_n the_o second_o instance_n that_o i_o give_v be_v their_o change_a christ_n most_o express_a institution_n by_o withhold_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n from_o the_o people_n and_o give_v they_o but_o half_a the_o sacrament_n i_o be_o not_o now_o dispute_v about_o the_o efficacy_n or_o inefficacy_n of_o one_o half_a so_o deliver_v but_o prove_v the_o intolerable_a arrogancy_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o dare_v set_v up_o the_o will_n of_o man_n above_o god_n word_n and_o give_v power_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o change_v christ_n institution_n and_o not_o only_o to_o add_v but_o to_o diminish_v and_o express_o to_o contradict_v christ_n and_o forbid_v what_o he_o command_v i_o know_v they_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v but_o to_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n that_o christ_n give_v the_o cup_n and_o not_o to_o the_o laity_n true_a nor_o the_o bread_n neither_o but_o then_o if_o he_o intend_v that_o none_o but_o the_o clergy_n have_v the_o cup_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o say_v so_o of_o the_o bread_n but_o do_v not_o these_o deceiver_n know_v 1._o that_o christ_n give_v this_o reason_n of_o his_o administer_a the_o cup_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o if_o this_o reason_n hold_v to_o other_o if_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o clergy_n than_o the_o command_n extend_v to_o other_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o and_o do_v they_o not_o know_v that_o luke_n further_o intimate_v this_o in_o his_o narration_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o so_o that_o those_o who_o it_o be_v shed_v for_o and_o we_o may_v discern_v to_o be_v believer_n it_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o 2._o and_o do_v they_o not_o know_v that_o paul_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n as_o from_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o clergy_n be_v it_o not_o all_o that_o he_o express_o command_v to_o examine_v themselves_o
that_o they_o will_v never_o take_v and_o interpret_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o unaniomous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n when_o as_o 1._o the_o father_n do_v not_o unanimous_o consent_v among_o themselves_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o be_v swear_v to_o take_v it_o in_o no_o sense_n because_o the_o father_n be_v not_o unanimous_a 2._o he_o that_o know_v not_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n where_o they_o be_v unanimous_a be_v swear_v hereby_o to_o take_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n in_o no_o sense_n 3._o if_o by_o the_o church_n who_o sense_n they_o also_o swear_v to_o admit_v be_v mean_v the_o present_a roman_a church_n than_o that_o church_n and_o the_o father_n do_v differ_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o many_o scripture_n so_o that_o in_o one_o article_n they_o must_v needs_o be_v forswear_v 4._o nay_o there_o be_v divers_a particular_n of_o the_o popish_a faith_n yea_o which_o in_o this_o oath_n they_o swear_v to_o which_o be_v against_o much_o more_o without_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n never_o consent_v to_o this_o very_a article_n that_o we_o must_v take_v and_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n only_o in_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n they_o never_o consent_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o transubstantiation_n nay_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n be_v against_o these_o and_o yet_o these_o wretch_n swear_v not_o to_o take_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n but_o in_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n and_o withal_o swear_v the_o contrary_a in_o particular_n even_o that_o they_o believe_v that_o which_o the_o father_n never_o consent_v to_o but_o against_o never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n that_o there_o be_v seven_o true_o and_o proper_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n who_o live_v a_o thousand_o or_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n before_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v not_o err_v or_o can_v not_o err_v nor_o that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v offer_v a_o true_a proper_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a nor_n that_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v take_v under_o one_o kind_n and_o the_o cup_n withhold_v nor_o that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n or_o the_o soul_n there_o holpen_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a nor_o that_o the_o saint_n with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v to_o nor_n that_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v nor_o the_o power_n of_o popish_a indulgency_n leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n of_o they_o wholesome_a never_o do_v the_o father_n consent_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n over_o they_o nor_o that_o all_o christian_n or_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n shall_v swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o christ_n vicar_n let_v these_o proud_a deceiver_n show_v we_o if_o they_o can_v when_o the_o father_n or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n do_v ever_o take_v any_o such_o oath_n himself_o or_o persuade_v other_o to_o it_o yea_o or_o that_o they_o have_v consent_v to_o any_o one_o of_o these_o article_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n and_o trent_n oath_n what_o more_o evident_a to_o any_o man_n that_o have_v any_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o father_n then_o that_o these_o wretch_n do_v here_o most_o palpable_o forswear_v themselves_o even_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v swear_v to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o withal_o swear_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n never_o die_v rose_n or_o ascend_v or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n or_o everlasting_a life_n certain_o if_o the_o very_a faith_n of_o papist_n be_v contradiction_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o plain_a perjury_n than_o popery_n be_v not_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o will_v here_o have_v add_v as_o the_o fourteen_o argument_n that_o popery_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o old_a condemn_a error_n former_o call_v heresy_n which_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v testify_v against_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v have_v try_v their_o particular_a error_n not_o yet_o mention_v or_o insist_v on_o as_o their_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n and_o justification_n thereby_o satisfaction_n and_o many_o semipelagian_a error_n image-worship_n with_o many_o the_o like_a but_o that_o this_o be_v beyond_o my_o present_a intend_a scope_n and_o purpose_a brevity_n and_o be_v so_o full_o perform_v already_o by_o so_o many_o unanswerable_a treatise_n of_o our_o divine_n let_v we_o next_o here_o what_o be_v say_v of_o most_o moment_n to_o prove_v popery_n to_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n obj._n 1_o that_o religion_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o day_n without_o interruption_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v save_v in_o but_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr 1._o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o very_a subject_n of_o the_o question_n it_o be_v popery_n that_o we_o be_v dispute_v of_o and_o this_o argument_n instead_o of_o popery_n speak_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v two_o part_n first_o the_o christian_a faith_n second_o their_o own_o corruption_n deprave_v and_o contradict_v this_o faith_n the_o first_o as_o it_o stand_v alone_o uncontradict_v in_o the_o religion_n which_o ●e_v profess_v the_o second_o be_v it_o that_o we_o call_v popery_n and_o ●ay_n it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n 2._o and_o of_o this_o i_o deny_v the_o minor_a and_o say_v that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n never_o know_v it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o creature_n as_o a_o papist_n know_v in_o all_o the_o world_n till_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v about_o 606._o when_o pope_n boniface_n do_v first_o claim_v his_o universal_a papacy_n and_o headship_n and_o after_o that_o it_o be_v not_o till_o about_o one_o thousand_o year_n that_o the_o usurpation_n and_o tyranny_n be_v consent_v to_o any_o thing_n general_o in_o th●_n west_n and_o even_o the_o multitude_n still_o dissent_v and_o some_o opposition_n be_v still_o make_v against_o it_o and_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n do_v dissent_v of_o these_o thing_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v to_o silence_v all_o the_o papist_n on_o earth_n in_o bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr contin_fw-fr successione_n &_o slatu_n eccles_n occident_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_n and_o by_o bishop_n jewel_n and_o doctor_n field_n and_o in_o many_o of_o the_o old_a treatise_n against_o the_o pope_n publish_v together_o by_o goldastus_n which_o show_v we_o that_o he_o settle_v not_o his_o kingdom_n without_o continnual_a opposition_n and_o contradiction_n we_o affirm_v that_o popery_n be_v a_o mere_a novelty_n and_o challenge_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n to_o prove_v the_o antiquity_n of_o it_o when_o they_o have_v once_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v that_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v true_a which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n will_v report_v of_o themselves_o it_o be_v then_o a_o easy_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o prove_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o make_v for_o their_o turn_n then_o they_o may_v say_v the_o father_n be_v for_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o papal_a sovereignty_n from_o st_n peter_n when_o there_o be_v never_o a_o true_a word_n in_o it_o then_o they_o may_v frame_v and_o forge_v new_a decretal_n and_o cut_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n th●_n which_o be_v against_o they_o and_o bring_v forth_o spurious_a write_n under_o their_o name_n and_o tell_v the_o people_n that_o our_o religion_n begin_v with_o luther_n for_o its_o easy_a to_o prove_v any_o thing_n where_o themselves_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o no_o witness_n but_o their_o own_o must_v be_v hear_v but_o if_o they_o dare_v leave_v that_o hold_n and_o come_v into_o the_o light_n its_o easy_a to_o evince_v the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n though_o not_o of_o every_o particular_a error_n they_o hold_v obj._n 2._o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n then_o popery_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n
must_v lie_v upon_o the_o exposition_n of_o they_o the_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o deliver_v 2._o obscurity_n show_v the_o need_n of_o a_o teacher_n but_o not_o of_o a_o judge_n at_o least_o its_o plain_a that_o when_o any_o teacher_n shall_v remove_v the_o obscurity_n those_o text_n oblige_v we_o as_o well_o as_o the_o plain_a 3._o as_o i_o say_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v judge_n of_o all_o difficult_a controvert_v text_n he_o be_v a_o unfaithful_a judge_n that_o will_v not_o expound_v they_o to_o we_o and_o decide_v so_o many_o controversy_n as_o yet_o depend_v what_o good_a will_v it_o be_v to_o the_o church_n to_o have_v such_o a_o judge_n of_o difficult_a controvert_v text_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o consciousness_n of_o his_o ignorance_n dare_v not_o give_v we_o his_o judgement_n but_o have_v leave_v they_o undecided_a these_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n this_o dumb_a oracle_n that_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o and_o a_o mouth_n but_o speak_v not_o be_v not_o a_o fit_a foundation_n for_o the_o church_n faith_n 5._o where_o god_n call_v man_n to_o office_n and_o power_n he_o accomplish_v or_o fit_v they_o in_o some_o measure_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o but_o god_n have_v not_o fit_v all_o pope_n no_o nor_o any_o to_o jugde_v decisive_o of_o all_o controvert_v difficultye_n in_o scripture_n and_o religion_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o make_v they_o judge_n of_o they_o the_o minor_a shall_v be_v further_o prove_v anon_o many_o pope_n have_v be_v ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a many_o heretic_n unfit_a to_o decide_v all_o such_o controversy_n and_o they_o have_v show_v their_o unfitnesse_n by_o their_o non_fw-la performance_n or_o ill_a performance_n the_o great_a objection_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v this_o obj._n 1_o what!_o shall_v every_o one_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o scripture_n and_o take_v it_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o please_v shall_v every_o unlearned_a man_n or_o woman_n expound_v it_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n then_o we_o shall_v have_v variety_n of_o exposition_n whether_o be_v it_o fit_a for_o the_o church_n or_o every_o simple_a fellow_n to_o be_v judge_n answ_n 1._o neither_o have_v god_n make_v subject_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o his_o law_n by_o which_o they_o must_v live_v and_o by_o which_o they_o must_v be_v judge_v neither_o they_o nor_o your_o pope_n must_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o law_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n but_o obeyer_n of_o it_o 2._o we_o say_v not_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v expound_v the_o scripture_n as_o teacher_n of_o other_o unless_o in_o their_o own_o calling_n as_o to_o the_o child_n servant_n etc._n etc._n when_o they_o be_v able_a this_o we_o reserve_v to_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o nor_o do_v we_o say_v that_o any_o people_n must_v expound_v scripture_n according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n or_o misguide_v conceit_n but_o according_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o 4._o nor_o shall_v they_o in_o difficult_a case_n which_o be_v past_o their_o understanding_n presume_v of_o their_o own_o wit_n to_o know_v the_o right_a meaning_n but_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o teacher_n that_o god_n have_v set_v over_o they_o that_o so_o by_o their_o help_n they_o may_v learn_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o word_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o 5._o and_o if_o their_o teacher_n be_v singular_a or_o give_v they_o just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v their_o skill_n or_o fidelity_n they_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o regard_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o judicious_a then_o of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o of_o any_o one_o or_o few_o so_o far_o as_o the_o credit_n or_o authority_n of_o man_n must_v support_v a_o learner_n while_o he_o be_v a_o learning_n 6._o but_o what_o be_v it_o indeed_o such_o a_o monstrous_a heretical_a conceit_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o papist_n that_o every_o christian_n shall_v have_v a_o judicium_fw-la discretionis_fw-la a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v to_o perceive_v and_o discern_v which_o be_v truth_n and_o which_o be_v falsehood_n good_a lord_n whether_o will_v the_o heat_n of_o contention_n carry_v man_n why_o if_o they_o must_v not_o have_v this_o discern_a judgement_n 1._o then_o god_n do_v bind_v they_o all_o to_o be_v fool_n and_o ignorant_a 2._o and_o then_o religion_n and_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v the_o endowment_n of_o bruit_n that_o know_v not_o what_o they_o hold_v or_o do_v and_o not_o of_o reasonable_a man_n 3._o or_o else_o they_o that_o will_v be_v christian_n must_v have_v no_o faith_n or_o knowledge_n which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n be_v not_o faith_n a_o act_n of_o discretion_n must_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n and_o everlasting_a life_n believe_v they_o with_o his_o own_o understanding_n and_o do_v he_o not_o in_o believe_v they_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a and_o judge_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o be_v false_a 4._o why_o will_v you_o read_v or_o preach_v scripture_n to_o the_o people_n if_o you_o will_v not_o have_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o a_o judgement_n of_o discern_v will_v you_o not_o have_v their_o judgement_n discern_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o god_n have_v write_v or_o the_o priest_n shall_v preach_v to_o they_o 5._o doubtless_o you_o will_v allow_v they_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n about_o the_o pope_n decree_n and_o canon_n and_o your_o own_o determination_n how_o can_v they_o believe_v you_o if_o they_o do_v not_o by_o judgement_n discern_v the_o thing_n you_o say_v to_o be_v true_a and_o why_o will_v you_o not_o allow_v they_o the_o like_a towards_o god_n and_o his_o word_n will_v you_o say_v it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o believe_v the_o pope_n and_o their_o sin_n to_o believe_v god_n or_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o understand_v the_o pope_n law_n and_o their_o sin_n to_o understand_v god_n law_n why_o what_o do_v you_o say_v less_o when_o you_o yield_v they_o a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o to_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n and_o deny_v it_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o will_v misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n i_o ans_fw-fr 1._o so_o will_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a man_n on_o earth_n in_o some_o part_n because_o while_o we_o be_v here_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n 2._o their_o error_n be_v their_o sin_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v at_o all_o for_o fear_v of_o miss_v their_o way_n must_v they_o put_v out_o their_o eye_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o fear_v of_o err_v must_v they_o not_o know_v or_o labour_n to_o know_v for_o fear_v of_o mistake_v will_v any_o master_n take_v this_o well_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n or_o do_v nothing_o for_o fear_v of_o do_v his_o work_n amiss_o or_o refuse_v to_o go_v his_o journey_n lest_o he_o miss_v the_o way_n then_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o the_o pope_n law_n neither_o and_o consequent_o not_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a for_o fear_v of_o err_v in_o our_o judgement_n when_o you_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n will_v you_o not_o have_v the_o people_n judge_v of_o your_o proof_n for_o fear_n of_o err_v this_o be_v even_o to_o make_v beast_n of_o christian_n 3._o what_o be_v teacher_n for_o but_o to_o guide_v they_o and_o help_v they_o to_o understand_v if_o you_o be_v afraid_a lest_o they_o shall_v err_v be_v the_o more_o diligent_a in_o instruct_v they_o but_o this_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o work_n of_o a_o popish_a teacher_n and_o we_o they_o make_v it_o their_o work_n to_o put_v out_o man_n eye_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o load_n of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v trouble_v with_o a_o imperfection_n in_o their_o sight_n and_o therefore_o will_v err_v if_o those_o imperfect_a eye_n be_v leave_v in_o their_o head_n we_o make_v it_o our_o work_n by_o all_o mean_v we_o can_v use_v to_o cure_v their_o eye_n sight_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o see_v themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n advise_v they_o while_o their_o eye_n be_v under_o cure_n not_o whole_o to_o trust_v to_o they_o but_o to_o use_v the_o help_n of_o other_o to_o show_v they_o the_o way_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o of_o danger_n the_o protestant_n will_v set_v his_o child_n to_o school_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o know_v that_o which_o through_o childishness_n he_o know_v not_o but_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a way_n we_o shall_v forbid_v they_o all_o book_n or_o learning_n lest_o they_o misunderstand_v they_o and_o let_v they_o never_o know_v any_o thing_n lest_o they_o know_v amiss_o the_o next_o step_n be_v to_o send_v they_o to_o bedlam_n the_o apostle_n will_v have_v man_n have_v their_o sense_n exercise_v to_o discern_v good_a
elsewhere_o quia_fw-la nolo_fw-la humanis_fw-la documentis_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o i_o will_v not_o have_v the_o holy_a church_n to_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o humane_a document_n but_o by_o god_n oracle_n for_o if_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v place_v the_o church_n in_o africa_n alone_o and_o in_o a_o few_o place_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n than_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o other_o paper_n the_o church_n be_v only_o with_o the_o donatist_n si_fw-mi autem_fw-la &c_n &c_n but_o if_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v place_v by_o the_o divine_a and_o most_o certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o all_o natition_n than_o what_o ever_o they_o bring_v and_o whence_o ever_o they_o recite_v it_o who_o say_v lo_o here_o be_v christ_n or_o lo_o there_o let_v we_o rather_o if_o we_o be_v his_o sheep_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o shepherd_n say_v believe_v they_o not_o for_o those_o parcel_n be_v not_o find_v in_o many_o nation_n where_o that_o church_n be_v but_o it_o which_o be_v every_o where_o be_v find_v even_o where_o they_o be_v therefore_o let_v we_o seek_v it_o in_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n and_o thus_o he_o go_v on_o and_o prove_v at_o large_a by_o the_o scripture_n the_o true_a church_n fit_v all_o as_o meet_v to_o the_o present_a schism_n of_o the_o papist_n almost_o as_o if_o he_o have_v see_v and_o name_v it_o cap._n 18._o begin_v thus_o because_o therefore_o the_o holy_a church_n be_v manifest_o know_v in_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n remotis_fw-la ergo_fw-la omnibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n lay_v aside_o therefore_o all_o such_o matter_n let_v they_o demonstrate_v their_o church_n if_o they_o can_v not_o in_o the_o speech_n and_o rumour_n of_o the_o african_n not_o in_o the_o council_n of_o their_o bishop_n not_o in_o the_o write_n of_o any_o disputer_n not_o in_o sign_n and_o fallacious_a miracle_n because_o we_o be_v prepare_v and_o caution_v against_o such_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 18._o but_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o psalm_n in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o pastor_n himself_o in_o the_o preach_n and_o labour_n of_o the_o evangelist_n that_o be_v in_o all_o the_o canonical_a authoritye_n of_o the_o sacred_a book_n next_o he_o show_v that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v out_o of_o parable_n allegory_n or_o such_o scripture_n that_o make_v no_o more_o for_o one_o side_n then_o the_o other_o what_o then_o do_v he_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v all_o such_o and_o send_v they_o to_o rome_n to_o know_v the_o sense_n no_o but_o it_o be_v the_o plain_a scripture_n of_o which_o he_o produce_v abundance_n that_o must_v tell_v we_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o he_o thus_o begin_v the_o 19_o chap._n omissis_fw-la ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v pass_n therefore_o the_o snare_n of_o delay_n let_v he_o show_v their_o church_n 154._o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o show_v it_o as_o not_o to_o say_v it_o be_v true_a because_o i_o say_v it_o or_o because_o my_o colleague_n say_v it_o or_o these_o colleague_n of_o i_o or_o those_o bishop_n or_o clerk_n or_o our_o laity_n or_o therefore_o its_o true_a faith_n because_o these_o or_o those_o wonder_n be_v do_v by_o donatus_n or_o pontius_n or_o any_o other_o or_o because_o man_n pray_v and_o be_v hear_v at_o the_o memory_n or_o shrine_n of_o we_o that_o be_v dead_a or_o because_o such_o or_o such_o thing_n happen_v there_o or_o because_o that_o brother_n of_o we_o or_o that_o sister_n of_o we_o see_v such_o a_o sight_n wake_v or_o have_v such_o a_o dream_a vision_n sleep_v away_o with_o these_o either_o fiction_n of_o lie_a man_n or_o wonder_n of_o deceive_a spirit_n for_o either_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v say_v be_v not_o true_a or_o if_o any_o wonder_n be_v do_v by_o heretic_n we_o must_v the_o more_o beware_v see_v the_o lord_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o there_o will_v come_v deceiver_n who_o by_o do_v certain_a sign_n will_v deceive_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a even_o the_o elect_a add_v lo_o i_o have_v foretell_v you_o and_o if_o any_o be_v hear_v pray_v at_o the_o memory_n of_o heretic_n it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o desert_n of_o the_o place_n but_o the_o desert_n of_o his_o desire_n that_o he_o receive_v good_a or_o evil_n no_o man_n can_v have_v christ_n for_o his_o head_n that_o be_v not_o in_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n which_o church_n we_o must_v know_v as_o we_o do_v christ_n himself_o in_o the_o sacred_a canonical_a scripture_n and_o not_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o various_a rumour_n of_o man_n and_o their_o opinion_n and_o deed_n and_o say_n and_o sight_n but_o let_v they_o show_v i_o whether_o they_o have_v the_o church_n no_o way_n but_o by_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o divine_a scriptuer_n because_o neither_o do_v we_o therefore_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v we_o that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o that_o church_n which_o we_o hold_v be_v commend_v by_o optatus_n melevitanus_n or_o by_o ambrose_n of_o milan_n or_o innumerable_a other_o church_n bishop_n of_o our_o communion_n or_o because_o it_o be_v predicate_v or_o praise_v by_o the_o council_n of_o our_o colleague_n or_o because_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o the_o holy_a place_n which_o be_v frequent_v by_o our_o communion_n so_o great_a marvaile_n of_o hear_n or_o healing_n be_v do_v here_o some_o be_v name_v what_o ever_o thing_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n ☜_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v approve_v because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o therefore_o manifest_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n because_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o it_o this_o he_o testify_v be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o psalm_n this_o we_o have_v commend_v by_o his_o own_o mouth_n these_o be_v the_o document_n of_o our_o cause_n these_o be_v its_o foundation_n these_o its_o upholder_n or_o confirmer_n we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o some_o believer_n that_o they_o daily_o search_v the_o scripture_n whether_o those_o thing_n be_v so_o what_o scripture_n but_o the_o canonical_a of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n hereto_o be_v add_v the_o gospel_n the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o revelation_n of_o john_n search_v all_o these_o and_o produce_v somewhat_o manifest_v which_o will_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o church_n either_o rome_n remain_v in_o africa_n alone_o or_o be_v to_o be_v from_o africa_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o the_o lord_n say_v this_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v preach_v in_o all_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n but_o bring_v somewhat_o that_o need_v nor_o a_o interpreter_n that_o you_o may_v not_o be_v convince_v that_o it_o speak_v of_o another_o matter_n and_o that_o you_o strive_v to_o turn_v it_o to_o your_o own_o sense_n etc._n chap._n 25._o the_o question_n be_v not_o dark_a in_o which_o they_o may_v deceive_v you_o you_o see_v the_o church_n be_v every_o where_o diffuse_v and_o increase_v to_o the_o harvest_n this_o whole_a book_n of_o austin_n be_v write_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v purpose_v as_o a_o confutation_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o contain_v only_o the_o roman_a faction_n and_o exclude_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n and_o will_v try_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o fly_v to_o i_o know_v not_o what_o vision_n and_o pretend_a miracle_n to_o prove_v their_o church_n which_o austin_n profess_v be_v not_o a_o proof_n no_o not_o of_o the_o true_a church_n though_o there_o be_v much_o more_o than_o there_o to_o boast_v of_o so_o that_o the_o papist_n can_v here_o say_v that_o austin_n thus_o deal_v with_o the_o donatist_n because_o they_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n he_o express_o enough_o prevent_v all_o such_o exposition_n of_o his_o word_n 33._o august_n con_fw-mi cresconium_fw-la li._n 2._o cap._n 33._o p._n 177._o say_v ego_fw-la huius_fw-la epistolae_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o be_o not_o bind_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o epistle_n of_o cyprian_n add_v jubai_n because_o i_o take_v not_o cyprian_n epistle_n be_v canonical_a but_o by_o the_o canonical_a i_o consider_v they_o and_o that_o in_o they_o which_o agree_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n i_o accept_v with_o his_o praise_n but_o that_o which_o disagree_v i_o refuse_v with_o his_o peace_n and_o so_o if_o thou_o have_v recite_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v to_o jubajan_n out_o of_o some_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n i_o shall_v have_v have_v
spirit_n but_o i_o find_v that_o even_o there_o durandus_fw-la destroy_v the_o roman_a cause_n for_o he_o immediate_o add_v that_o hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la approbatione_fw-la scripturae_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la intelligitur_fw-la solum_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la fuit_fw-la tempore_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la qui_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la repleti_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nihilominus_fw-la viderunt_fw-la miracula_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o audierunt_fw-la ejus_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la &_o ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la convenientes_fw-la testes_fw-la omnium_fw-la quae_fw-la christus_fw-la fecit_fw-la aut_fw-la do●uit_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la eorum_fw-la testimonium_fw-la scriptura_fw-la continens_fw-la facta_fw-la &_o dicta_fw-la christi_fw-la approbaretur_fw-la that_o be_v 576._o this_o which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o church_n be_v only_o mean_v of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o also_o see_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o hear_v his_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o be_v fit_a witness_n of_o all_o that_o christ_n do_v or_o teach_v that_o by_o their_o testimony_n the_o scripture_n contain_v the_o deed_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n err_v may_v be_v approve_v this_o he_o prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o conclude_v that_o the_o gospel_n which_o that_o church_n approve_v can_v now_o be_v reject_v because_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a cause_n and_o that_o immo_n tenens_fw-la contrarium_fw-la haereticus_fw-la est_fw-la cujuscunque_fw-la status_fw-la aut_fw-la conditionis_fw-la existat_fw-la yea_o he_o that_o hold_v the_o contrary_a be_v a_o heretic_n of_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n soever_o he_o be_v not_o except_v the_o pope_n himself_o be_v this_o like_a the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n or_o of_o protestant_n yea_o one_o word_n to_o master_n knot_n and_o those_o of_o his_o that_o will_v resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o present_a rome_n church_n if_o those_o miracle_n which_o they_o glory_v in_o be_v indeed_o regardable_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a for_o the_o author_n of_o those_o miracle_n do_v witness_v they_o to_o be_v fallible_a the_o old_a saint_n austin_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n and_o before_o who_o testimony_n about_o miracle_n they_o bring_v in_o as_o i_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v be_v against_o their_o usurp_a jurisdiction_n and_o infallibility_n their_o saint_n maud_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v ere_o long_o apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n total_o and_o open_o which_o do_v obscure_o apostatise_v of_o a_o long_a time_n before_o their_o saint_n elizabeth_n say_v that_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n cry_v out_o but_o his_o member_n be_v dead_a jerem._n that_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n be_v possess_v with_o pride_n and_o the_o flock_n go_v astray_o the_o suppose_a prophet_n abbat_n joachim_n say_v there_o be_v yet_o another_o figtree_n wither_v by_o the_o curse_n of_o prevarication_n the_o latin_a church_n or_o the_o ship_n of_o peter_n who_o temporal_a leaf_n be_v make_v cover_v to_o excuse_v sin_n with_o which_o both_o adam_n the_o pope_n and_o eve_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n do_v cover_v the_o dishonesty_n of_o their_o life_n 57_o and_o miserable_o hide_v themselves_o in_o the_o wood_n of_o ecclesiastical_a glory_n but_o i_o will_v trouble_v myself_o and_o the_o reader_n with_o no_o more_o of_o this_o work_n fear_v that_o i_o have_v trespass_v in_o do_v more_o than_o need_v in_o so_o plain_a a_o case_n already_o i_o will_v therefore_o shut_v up_o all_o that_o i_o have_v to_o say_v from_o humane_a testimony_n with_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostom_n or_o whoever_o else_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a work_n on_o math._n and_o his_o own_o certain_a expression_n elsewhere_o in_o the_o imperfect_a comment_n edit_fw-la commel_n a_o 1617._o in_o math._n 20._o hom._n 35._o 900.901_o pag._n 900.901_o it_o be_v say_v as_o follow_v fructum_fw-la humilitatis_fw-la terrestris_fw-la posuit_fw-la primatum_fw-la caelestem_fw-la &_o primatus_fw-la terrestris_fw-la fructum_fw-la posuit_fw-la confusionem_fw-la caelestem_fw-la quicunque_fw-la ergo_fw-la defiderat_fw-la primatum_fw-la caelestem_fw-la sequatur_fw-la humilitatem_fw-la terrestrem_fw-la quicunque_fw-la autem_fw-la desiderat_fw-la primatum_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la inveniet_fw-la confusionem_fw-la in_o caelum_fw-la ut_fw-la jam_fw-la inter_fw-la seruos_fw-la christi_fw-la ●on_n sit_fw-la de_fw-la primatu_fw-la certamen_fw-la that_o be_v he_o have_v make_v the_o celestial_a primacy_n to_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o terrestrial_a humility_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o earthly_a primacy_n he_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v celestial_a confusion_n heaven_n whosoever_o therefore_o desire_v celestial_a primacy_n let_v he_o follow_v terrestrial_a humility_n but_o whosoever_o desire_v primacy_n on_o earth_n shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n that_o so_o a_o among_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n there_o may_v be_v no_o strife_n for_o primacy_n and_o afterward_o he_o add_v primatum_fw-la autem_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la concupiscere_fw-la neque_fw-la ratio_fw-la est_fw-la neque_fw-la causa_fw-la quia_fw-la neque_fw-la justum_fw-la est_fw-la neque_fw-la utile_fw-la quis_fw-la enim_fw-la sapiens_fw-la ultro_fw-la se_fw-la subjicere_fw-la festinar_fw-mi servituti_fw-la labori_fw-la dolori_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la majus_fw-la est_fw-la periculo_fw-la tali_fw-la ut_fw-la det_fw-la rationem_fw-la pro_fw-la omni_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apud_fw-la justum_fw-la judicem_fw-la nisi_fw-la forte_fw-fr qui_fw-la nec_fw-la credit_n judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la nec_fw-la time_n uti_fw-la abutens_fw-la primatu_fw-la svo_fw-la ecclesiastico_fw-la seculariter_fw-la convertat_fw-la eum_fw-la in_o secularem_fw-la that_o be_v but_o to_o desire_v a_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n there_o be_v neither_o reason_n nor_o cause_n because_o it_o be_v neither_o just_a nor_o profitable_a for_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v voluntary_o hasten_v to_o subject_v himself_o to_o servitude_n labour_n grief_n and_o which_o be_v more_o to_o such_o a_o danger_n as_o to_o be_v accountable_a to_o the_o righteous_a judge_n for_o all_o the_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v one_o that_o perhaps_o do_v neither_o believe_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n nor_o fear_v it_o that_o abuse_v secular_o his_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n he_o may_v turn_v it_o into_o a_o secular_a one_o will_v think_v this_o shall_v be_v plain_a enough_o against_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n if_o they_o tell_v i_o that_o this_o be_v none_o of_o chrysostom_n work_n but_o some_o heretic_n i_o answer_v when_o they_o have_v use_v for_o it_o they_o can_v magnify_v it_o let_v their_o sixtus_n senensis_n word_n be_v weigh_v which_o be_v print_v before_o this_o book_n especial_o what_o he_o say_v of_o some_o ancient_a copy_n which_o have_v the_o error_n only_o in_o the_o margin_n write_v by_o some_o arrian_n hand_n and_o withal_o that_o it_o be_v very_o observable_a that_o the_o error_n be_v so_o intermix_v that_o yet_o you_o may_v take_v they_o out_o and_o not_o maim_v any_o of_o the_o sense_n but_o leave_v the_o rest_n entire_a yea_o they_o seem_v as_o parenthentical_a or_o superfluous_a and_o then_o conjecture_v whether_o yet_o it_o may_v not_o be_v crysostomes_n but_o who_o be_v so_o ever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v ancient_a and_o common_o much_o commend_v but_o let_v that_o go_v which_o way_n it_o will_v as_o long_o as_o in_o the_o undoubted_a work_n of_o crysostome_n there_o be_v over_o and_o over_o again_o the_o like_a in_o his_o homil._n 66._o alias_o 67._o in_o mat._n 20._o pag._n 577._o 577._o he_o say_v they_o that_o seek_v primacy_n be_v a_o disgrace_n to_o themselves_o not_o know_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o shall_v thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o low_a state_n the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o homil._n on_o math._n 18._o i_o shall_v now_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o impartial_a by_o this_o small_a taste_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o former_a tme_n whether_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o universal_a government_n be_v a_o thing_n know_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o old_a or_o yield_v as_o soon_o as_o ambitious_o seek_v and_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o sit_v ground_n for_o we_o to_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o or_o resolve_v it_o into_o and_o if_o any_o will_v see_v more_o of_o the_o resistancy_n of_o their_o usurpation_n even_o when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o high_a he_o may_v read_v in_o mich._n goldastus_n a_o multitude_n of_o volume_n that_o will_v give_v he_o further_o information_n or_o in_o bishop_n usher_n de_fw-fr success_n &_o stat_fw-la eccles_n he_o may_v find_v enough_o in_o narrow_a room_n the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o disputation_n shall_v consist_v of_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o popish_a argument_n for_o their_o cause_n but_o i_o can_v find_v so_o little_a in_o any_o of_o their_o write_n that_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o more_o than_o what_o be_v answer_v before_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o stand_v long_o upon_o this_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o our_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a than_o people_n
the_o creation_n to_o this_o day_n and_o we_o must_v now_o begin_v to_o feign_v a_o necessity_n of_o their_o infallibility_n let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o god_n and_o the_o extraordinary_o inspire_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o we_o have_v teacher_n that_o can_v infallible_o prove_v to_o we_o what_o he_o require_v of_o we_o in_o his_o word_n in_o point_n of_o necessity_n to_o our_o everlasting_a happiness_n and_o for_o themselves_o pretend_v to_o infallibility_n make_v they_o not_o nor_o procure_v they_o infallible_a whereas_o their_o voluminous_a error_n and_o the_o wicked_a practice_n ground_v thereupon_o and_o their_o frequent_a self-contradiction_n and_o mutation_n do_v proclaim_v aloud_o to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v both_o deceivable_a deceive_v and_o deceiver_n while_o the_o holy_a scripture_n who_o sufficiency_n they_o deny_v be_v by_o themselves_o confess_v to_o be_v of_o infallible_a verity_n we_o be_v resolve_v therefore_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o a_o business_n of_o such_o moment_n as_o the_o everlasting_a save_n or_o lose_v of_o our_o soul_n to_o venture_v and_o bottom_n all_o our_o hope_n on_o that_o word_n of_o god_n who_o infallibility_n they_o confess_v then_o on_o the_o word●_n of_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o infallibility_n and_o notorious_o declare_v the_o vainty_a of_o those_o pretence_n some_o more_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o antiquity_n in_o the_o main_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n to_o declare_v further_a who_o it_o be_v that_o be_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n cyrill_n hierosol_n cateche_n 4._o sect._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la pag._n edit_n paris_n 1631._o 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n i._n e._n for_o concern_v divine_a thing_n and_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o faith_n nothing_o no_o not_o the_o small_a thing_n ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v without_o the_o divine_a scripture_n nor_o to_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o simple_a probability_n plain_a nor_o by_o a_o train_n of_o word_n nay_o do_v not_o simple_o believe_v i_o myself_o when_o i_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n to_o thou_o unless_o thou_o receive_v a_o demonstration_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o speak_v from_o the_o divine_a scripture_n for_o the_o very_a safety_n of_o our_o faith_n rest_v not_o on_o the_o elegancy_n of_o speech_n but_o on_o the_o proof_n of_o divine_a scripture_n and_o pag._n 36._o sect_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la script_n he_o tell_v you_o what_o scripture_n he_o mean_v earnest_o dissuade_v from_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n and_o number_v the_o same_o only_o which_o we_o own_v as_o canonical_a save_v that_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o omit_v the_o epist_n to_o hebrew_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o cateche_n 17._o pag._n 192._o he_o say_v and_o we_o now_o also_o ingenious_o confess_v that_o we_o will_v not_o use_v humane_a reason_n but_o will_v only_o commemorate_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o be_v most_o safe_a as_o saint_n paul_n 1._o cor._n 2.4_o and_o cateche_n 18._o pag._n 220_o 221_o 222._o see_v how_o he_o describe_v the_o catholic_a church_n without_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o the_o roman_a description_n august_n cont._n literas_fw-la petiliani_fw-la li._n 3._o cap._n 6._o pag._n edit_n paris_n 127._o col_fw-fr 1._o proinde_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sive_fw-la de_fw-la quacunque_fw-la alia_fw-la re_fw-la quae_fw-la pertinet_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la utramque_fw-la nostram_fw-la hatred_n non_fw-la dicam_fw-la nos_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la comparandi_fw-la ei_fw-la qui_fw-la dixit_fw-la licet_fw-la si_fw-la nos_fw-la sed_fw-la omnino_fw-la quod_fw-la secutus_fw-la adjecit_fw-la si_fw-mi angelus_n de_fw-la caelum_fw-la vobis_fw-la annunciaverit_fw-la preterquam_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o scripture_n legalibus_fw-la &_o evangelicis_fw-la accepistis_fw-la anathema_n sit_v church_n hac_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la quos_fw-la christo_fw-la lucrati_fw-la cupimus_fw-la actitante_n atque_fw-la inter_fw-la cetera_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o dei_fw-la lieris_fw-la promissam_fw-la legimus_fw-la &_o sicut_fw-la promissa_fw-la est_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la g●ntibus_fw-la reddi_fw-la cernimus_fw-la praedicantes_fw-la ab_fw-la iis_fw-la quos_fw-la ad_fw-la ejus_fw-la pacificum_fw-la gremium_fw-la attrahi_fw-la cupimus_fw-la pro_fw-la actione_n gratiarum_fw-la flammas_fw-la meruinnus_fw-la odiorum_fw-la that_o be_v moreover_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n or_o of_o any_o other_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n i_o say_v not_o if_o we_o who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o he_o who_o say_v though_o we_o but_o that_o which_o he_o next_o add_v if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v to_o you_o any_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v while_o we_o deal_v thus_o with_o you_o and_o with_o all_o man_n who_o we_o desire_v to_o win_v to_o christ_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n do_v preach_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o we_o find_v promise_v in_o god_n scripture_n and_o which_o we_o see_v to_o be_v place_v in_o all_o nation_n as_o be_v promise_v we_o have_v deserve_v or_o procure_v the_o flame_n of_o hatred_n from_o those_o who_o we_o desire_v to_o draw_v into_o its_o pacifike_n bosom_n in_o stead_n of_o thanks_o and_o he_o proceed_v as_o if_o it_o be_v we_o that_o so_o long_o before_o have_v bid_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o put_v in_o their_o book_n any_o testimony_n by_o which_o the_o faction_n or_o party_n of_o donatus_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o epistle_n ad_fw-la demetriadem_n common_o reckon_v the_o 142._o among_o augustine_n cap._n 9_o say_v scito_fw-la itaque_fw-la in_o scripture_n divinis_fw-la per_fw-la quas_fw-la solas_fw-la potes_fw-la plenam_fw-la dei_fw-la intelligere_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o the_o divine_a scripture_n alone_o thou_o may_v understand_v the_o full_a will_n of_o god_n i_o know_v the_o louvain_n doctor_n put_v this_o epistle_n in_o the_o appendix_n and_o conjecture_v it_o to_o be_v of_o pelagius_n but_o 1._o it_o show_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o age_n 2._o never_o do_v austin_n contradict_v it_o but_o oft_o say_v the_o like_a august_n de_fw-fr peccat_fw-la merit_n &_o remiss_a li._n 2._o cap._n 36._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 304._o say_v talis_fw-la populus_fw-la ut_fw-la praedixi_fw-la eruditus_fw-la in_o regno_fw-la caelorum_fw-la per_fw-la duo_fw-la testamenta_fw-la vetus_fw-la &_o novum_fw-la non_fw-la declinans_fw-la in_o dextram_fw-la superba_fw-la presumtione_fw-la justitiae_fw-la neque_fw-la in_o sinistram_fw-la secuva_fw-fr delectatione_n peccati_fw-la in_fw-la terram_fw-la illius_fw-la promissionis_fw-la intrabit_fw-la &_o postea_fw-la vbi_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la obscurissima_fw-la disputatur_fw-la non_fw-la adjuvantibus_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la certis_fw-la clarisque_fw-la documentis_fw-la cohibere_fw-la se_fw-la deb●t_fw-la humana_fw-la presumptio_fw-la nihil_fw-la faciens_fw-la in_o partem_fw-la alteram_fw-la declinando_fw-la so_o that_o in_o austius_n judgement_n the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n teach_v we_o enough_o to_o salvation_n and_o in_o the_o difficult_a point_n we_o must_v not_o so_o much_o as_o incline_v to_o either_o side_n without_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v presumption_n to_o speak_v when_o they_o be_v silent_a and_o in_o his_o 49._o tract_n on_o john_n he_o say_v evangelista_n testatur_fw-la multa_fw-la dominum_fw-la christum_fw-la &_o dixisse_fw-la &_o fecisse_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la electa_fw-la sunt_fw-la autem_fw-la quae_fw-la scriberentur_fw-la quae_fw-la saluti_fw-la credentium_fw-la sufficere_fw-la videbantur_fw-la i._n e._n the_o evangelist_n testify_v that_o the_o lord_n christ_n speak_v and_o do_v many_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v but_o those_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v write_v which_o seem_v sufficient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n and_o li._n de_fw-fr nat._n grat_n c._n 26._o he_o say_v to_o the_o pelagian_n solis_fw-la canonicis_fw-la debeo_fw-la sine_fw-la ●ulla_fw-la recusatione_fw-la consensum_fw-la that_o be_v i_o owe_v a_o consent_n without_o any_o refusal_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n alone_o a_o hundred_o more_o such_o saying_n may_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o augustine_n hierom_n on_o the_o first_o ch._n of_o hag._n fol_n mihi_fw-la 102._o speak_v of_o the_o use_n of_o heretic_n say_v sed_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la quae_fw-la absque_fw-la authoritate_fw-la &_o testimoniis_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la quasi_fw-la traditione_n apostolica_fw-la sponte_fw-la reperiunt_fw-la atque_fw-la confingunt_fw-la percutit_fw-la gladius_fw-la dei_fw-la popish_a i._n e._n but_o other_o thing_n which_o without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n they_o do_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n find_v out_o and_o feign_v as_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n will_v cut_v down_o and_o he_o instance_v in_o the_o fasting_n and_o other_o austerity_n of_o the_o tatiani_n which_o he_o say_v they_o suffer_v causeless_o the_o same_o hierom_n against_o helvidius_n say_v ut_fw-la haec_fw-la quae_fw-la
may_v change_v any_o thing_n that_o god_n appoint_v about_o sacrament_n except_o the_o substance_n and_o it_o be_v well_o if_o they_o will_v have_v leave_v that_o unchanged_a the_o council_n of_o constance_n take_v the_o cup_n from_o the_o laity_n licet_fw-la in_o primitiva_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la reciperetur_fw-la a_o fidelibus_fw-la sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la though_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a under_o both_o kind_n so_o that_o they_o confess_v they_o contradict_v the_o primitive_a church_n bellarmine_n plain_o say_v li._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 5._o si_fw-la papa_n erraret_fw-la in_o praecipiendo_fw-la vitia_fw-la vel_fw-la prohibendo_fw-la virtutes_fw-la teneretur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la credere_fw-la vitia_fw-la esse_fw-la bona_fw-la &_o virtutes_fw-la malas_fw-la nisi_fw-la vellet_fw-la contra_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la peccare_fw-la that_o be_v if_o the_o pope_n shall_v err_v in_o command_a vice_n and_o forbid_v virtue_n the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o vice_n be_v good_a and_o virtue_n bad_a unless_o they_o will_v sin_v against_o conscience_n and_o against_o barelay_v cap._n 31._o he_o say_v in_o bono_fw-mi sensu_fw-la dedit_fw-la christus_fw-la petro_n potestatem_fw-la faciendi_fw-la de_fw-la peccato_fw-la non_fw-la peccatum_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr non_fw-la peccato_fw-la peccatum_fw-la that_o be_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n christ_n have_v give_v power_n to_o peter_n to_o make_v sin_n no_o sin_n and_o no_o sin_n to_o be_v sin_n compare_v this_o doctrine_n with_o the_o father_n the_o glass_n in_o can._n lector_fw-la dist_n 34._o say_v papa_n dispensat_fw-la contra_fw-la apostolum_n the_o pope_n dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n innocent_n 3._o decret_n de_fw-fr conce_n prebend_v do_fw-mi 8._o c._n proposuit_fw-la say_v secundum_fw-la plenitudinem_fw-la potestatis_fw-la de_fw-la jure_fw-la supra_fw-la jus_o possumus_fw-la dispensare_fw-la according_o to_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o power_n we_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n above_o law_n and_o the_o gloss_n add_v for_o the_o pope_n dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n and_o against_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o also_o in_o vow_n and_o oath_n and_o another_o gloss_n say_v the_o pope_n dispense_v with_o the_o gospel_n in_o interpret_n it_o more_o such_o gloss_n you_o may_v find_v if_o not_o yet_o more_o gross_a and_o impious_a which_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o recite_v gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n tom._n 4._o disp_n 6._o qu._n 8._o p._n 5._o §_o 10._o say_v et_fw-la certe_fw-la quaedam_fw-la posterioribus_fw-la temp●ribus_fw-la rectius_fw-la constituta_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la quam_fw-la initio_fw-la se_fw-la haberent_fw-la that_o be_v and_o certain_o some_o thing_n be_v more_o right_o constitute_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o latter_a time_n than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n andradius_fw-la defens_n council_n trident._n lib._n 2._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 236._o say_v vnde_fw-la etiam_fw-la liquet_fw-la minime_fw-la eos_fw-la errasse_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la romanos_fw-la pontifices_fw-la posse_fw-la nonnunquam_fw-la in_o legibus_fw-la dispensare_fw-la a_o paulo_n primisque_fw-la quatuor_fw-la conciliis_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la exornandam_fw-la moresque_fw-la componendos_fw-la pro_fw-la temporum_fw-la necessitate_v edictis_fw-la qualis_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la interdicit_fw-la ut_fw-la digamos_a creari_fw-la ne_fw-la liceat_fw-la episcopos_fw-la i._n e._n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o do_v not_o err_v who_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n may_v sometime_o dispense_v with_o law_n make_v by_o paul_n and_o the_o four_o first_o council_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n to_o the_o adore_v of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o compose_n of_o manner_n such_o as_o be_v that_o which_o forbid_v those_o to_o be_v make_v bishop_n who_o be_v the_o husband_n of_o two_o wife_n cardinal_n perron_n against_o king_n james_n li._n 2._o obser_n 3._o ●_o 3._o p._n 674._o have_v a_o chapter_n purposely_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o alter_v matter_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o pag._n 1109._o &_o 1115._o he_o say_v that_o when_o in_o the_o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n some_o great_a inconvenicy_n be_v meet_v withal_o the_o church_n may_v therein_o dispense_v and_o alter_v and_o that_o the_o lord_n word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o be_v a_o precept_n not_o immutable_a nor_o in_o dispensable_a for_o the_o church_n have_v judge_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o dispensation_n for_o ●t_a b●ovius_n observe_v on_o c._n 24._o constit_fw-la apost_n say_v ecclesia_fw-la romana_fw-la quae_fw-la apostolica_fw-la utens_fw-la potestate_fw-la singula_fw-la pro_fw-la conditione_n temporum_fw-la in_o melius_fw-la mutat_fw-la i.e._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v apostolical_a power_n do_v according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o time_n change_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o better_a cardinal_n tolet_n say_v cum_fw-la certum_fw-la sit_fw-la non_fw-la omne_fw-la q●ae_fw-la apostoli_fw-la instituerunt_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la esse_fw-la instituta_fw-la i._n e._n it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n institute_v be_v not_o institute_v by_o divine_a right_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v show_v its_o usurpation_n of_o power_n above_o scripture_n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o degree_n of_o marriage_n in_o leu._n 18._o &_o 20._o add_v to_o what_o god_n have_v prohibit_v and_o relax_v what_o god_n have_v restrain_v and_o that_o to_o great_a prince_n and_o for_o a_o public_a cause_n when_o they_o make_v it_o sin_n to_o other_o man_n these_o and_o many_o more_o of_o their_o gross_a say_n and_o usurpation_n against_o scripture_n and_o above_o it_o they_o have_v be_v long_o ago_o tell_v of_o by_o jewel_n reignolds_n whittaker_n molinaeus_n and_o other_o and_o how_o sleight_n their_o evasion_n be_v the_o considerate_a and_o impartial_a may_v discern_v i_o have_v therefore_o recite_v thus_o much_o of_o their_o word_n here_o that_o you_o may_v compare_v they_o with_o the_o ancient_n and_o then_o see_v who_o be_v the_o changeling_n and_o novelist_n and_o who_o they_o be_v that_o keep_v to_o the_o old_a church_n and_o religion_n and_o among_o other_o ancient_a writer_n i_o will_v desire_v you_o beside_o all_o the_o forecited_a to_o compare_v the_o popish_a frame_n with_o the_o direction_n of_o vicentius_n lirinensis_n heres_fw-la which_o he_o give_v we_o for_o the_o discovery_n of_o truth_n and_o avoid_v heresy_n in_o his_o book_n contr._n haeres_fw-la which_o i_o the_o rather_o mention_v because_o i_o admire_v that_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v so_o immodest_a as_o to_o boast_v so_o much_o of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o be_v on_o their_o side_n the_o sum_n of_o his_o advice_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n be_v this_o 10_o fidem_fw-la munire_fw-la divinae_fw-la legis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la 20_o ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la traditione_n to_o fortify_v our_o faith_n 1._o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n law_n 2._o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o way_n he_o say_v he_o be_v himself_o direct_v to_o by_o all_o the_o holy_a learned_a man_n that_o he_o inquire_v of_o saepa_n magno_fw-la study_v &_o summa_fw-la attentioae_fw-la perquirens_fw-la a_o quamplurimis_fw-la sanctitate_fw-la &_o doctrina_fw-la praestantibus_fw-la viris_fw-la quonam_fw-la modo_fw-la possem_fw-la certa_fw-la quadam_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la generali_fw-la ac_fw-la regulari_fw-la via_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritatem_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticae_fw-la pravitatis_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernere_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la semper_fw-la responsum_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la fere_n retuli_fw-la cap._n 1._o edit_fw-la colon._n a._n 1613_o &_o pag._n 617._o edit_fw-la perionii_fw-la lugd._n 1572._o so_o that_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v by_o this_o passage_n 1._o that_o this_o be_v no_o private_a opinion_n of_o vincentius_n but_o the_o common_a way_n that_o be_v then_o take_v by_o holy_a learned_a man_n to_o discern_v truth_n from_o heresy_n 2._o and_o note_v well_o that_o he_o do_v not_o once_o in_o all_o the_o book_n direct_v we_o to_o the_o determination_n much_o less_o to_o the_o infallible_a determination_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o way_n to_o discern_v truth_n from_o heresy_n and_o can_v any_o man_n of_o common_a reason_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n imagine_v that_o there_o be_v the_o least_o probability_n that_o vincentius_n shall_v silence_v this_o romish_a decision_n in_o a_o treatise_n write_v purposely_o and_o only_o on_o that_o subject_n and_o wherein_o he_o undertake_v to_o give_v we_o the_o full_a and_o certain_a direction_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n if_o the_o church_n have_v then_o be_v of_o the_o romanist_n opinion_n o_o intolerable_o forgetful_a negligent_a delusory_a man_n that_o will_v not_o give_v we_o one_o word_n of_o that_o which_o be_v now_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o and_o into_o which_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v ultimate_o resolve_v what_o never_o a_o word_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o pope_n or_o clergy_n of_o rome_n be_v for_o or_o against_o may_v be_v know_v according_o to_o be_v true_a or_o false_a because_o he_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n
quod_fw-la coram_fw-la omnibus_fw-la just_a vivre_fw-fr &_o bene_fw-la omne_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la credant_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la articules_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la continentur_fw-la solummodo_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la blasphemant_fw-la et_fw-la clerum_fw-la that_o be_v among_o all_o the_o sect_n that_o yet_o be_v and_o have_v be_v there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o pernicious_a to_o the_o church_n then_o that_o of_o the_o lyonist_n and_o that_o for_o three_o cause_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v the_o more_o 〈◊〉_d or_o of_o long_a continuance_n for_o some_o 〈◊〉_d it_o have_v endure_v from_o the_o time_n of_o silvester_n other_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v more_o general_a for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o land_n in_o which_o this_o ●ect_n ●s_v not_o 3._o because_o when_o all_o other_o sect_n do_v by_o the_o immanity_n of_o their_o blasphemy_n bring_v horror_n into_o the_o hearer_n this_o of_o the_o lyonist_n have_v a_o great_a show_n of_o godliness_n in_o that_o they_o live_v righteous_o before_o all_o man_n and_o they_o believe_v all_o thing_n well_o concern_v god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n only_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o clergy_n to_o this_o add_v what_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o canus_n and_o other_o before_o last_o give_v we_o some_o tolerable_a answer_n to_o all_o that_o voluminous_a evidence_n of_o your_o opposition_n by_o prince_n prelate_n divine_n and_o lawyer_n which_o mich._n goldastus_n have_v collect_v and_o publish_v on_o his_o volume_n the_o monarch_n &_o constitut_v imperial_a appendix_n a_o translation_n of_o bishop_n downame_n catalogue_n of_o popish_a error_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la antichristo_fw-la cap._n 7._o to_o satisfy_v the_o earnest_a desire_n of_o some_o of_o the_o unlearned_a who_o will_v fain_o know_v wherein_o the_o papist_n differ_v from_o we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o furnish_v against_o they_o and_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v those_o that_o under_o other_o title_n carry_v about_o their_o doctrine_n because_o i_o find_v many_o ignorant_a person_n both_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n plain_a and_o yet_o very_o desirous_a to_o know_v they_o i_o have_v adventure_v to_o translate_v a_o large_a catalogue_n of_o they_o gather_v by_o bishop_n george_n downame_n in_o his_o book_n write_v to_o prove_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 7._o pag._n 189._o etc._n etc._n though_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o in_o such_o brief_a expression_n the_o true_a point_n of_o the_o difference_n shall_v in_o all_o lie_n plain_a before_o they_o that_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o the_o controversy_n yet_o because_o i_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o give_v you_o any_o such_o catalogue_n of_o my_o own_o gather_n and_o know_v not_o where_o to_o find_v one_o so_o large_a as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o error_n and_o brief_a as_o to_o the_o expression_n i_o give_v you_o this_o as_o i_o find_v it_o bishop_n g.d._n chap._n 7._o a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v either_o about_o the_o principle_n of_o divinity_n or_o the_o part_n of_o it_o the_o principle_n of_o theology_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n here_o the_o papist_n have_v many_o error_n 1._o they_o deny_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v of_o divine_a inspiration_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o foundation_n truth_n of_o faith_n 2._o they_o take_v certain_a apocryphal_a book_n into_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o neither_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n to_o which_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v nor_o yet_o the_o pure_a christian_a church_n do_v receive_v fabric_n 3._o they_o make_v two_o part_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n and_o their_o own_o tradition_n 4._o they_o contend_v that_o the_o custom_n and_o unwritten_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o certain_a apostolical_a tradition_n 5._o these_o tradition_n or_o as_o they_o call_v they_o unwritten_a verity_n they_o make_v equal_a with_o the_o holy_a scriture_n and_o receive_v and_o reverence_v they_o with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n and_o reverence_n 6._o they_o number_v the_o pope_n decretal_a epistle_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n clementines_n stature_n 7._o they_o say_v its_o heresy_n for_o any_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n to_o appoint_v article_n of_o faith_n we_o 8._o they_o prefer_v the_o faith_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o internal_a scripture_n write_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n in_o heart_n of_o the_o church_n b●fore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n judgement_n 9_o that_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n himself_o speak_v be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o strife_n 10._o life_n they_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o light_n to_o our_o foot_n and_o giveth_z understanding_n to_o child_n of_o too_o much_o obscurity_n 11._o error_n they_o condemn_v it_o also_o of_o imperfection_n and_o insufficiency_n 12._o they_o say_v that_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n we_o can_v argue_v negative_o from_o scripture_n as_o thus_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a or_o lawful_a 13._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o refute_v of_o all_o heresy_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o heresy_n but_o what_o be_v against_o scripture_n 14._o that_o heresy_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v define_v by_o the_o scripture_n authority_n as_o by_o the_o church_n determination_n 15._o foundation_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a be_v great_a ●en_n of_o the_o scripture_n ●nd_v the_o pope_n authority_n great_a than_o the_o church_n 16._o member_n that_o the_o church_n be_v ancient_a than_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v now_o write_v because_o it_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o writing_n of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v first_o deliver_v by_o voice_n that_o be_v now_o then_o in_o writing_n etc._n 17._o that_o the_o scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a and_o not_o the_o church_n on_o the_o scripture_n arrogancy_n 18._o also_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 19_o they_o make_v seven_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v all_o ground_a in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v and_o pope_n of_o rome_n they_o 20._o they_o take_v the_o vulg●_fw-la translation_n only_o for_o authentical_a prefer_n it_o before_o the_o original_n though_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_o corrupt_v that_o the_o copy_n late_o publish_v by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o clement_n the_o eight_o do_v in_o many_o place_n differ_v 21._o principle_n that_o either_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n or_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o it_o must_v neither_o be_v public_o read_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n nor_o permit_v to_o be_v private_o read_v by_o the_o common_a people_n §_o 2._o of_o the_o belief_n the_o part_n of_o theology_n be_v 1._o of_o faith_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v 2._o of_o charity_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v 1._o of_o god_n &_o his_o work_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v special_o 1._o of_o creation_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o of_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n 1._o god_n about_o the_o creation_n the_o papist_n err_v in_o say_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v then_o natural_a to_o man_n though_o john_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n 1_o jo._n 2.16_o and_o themselves_o sometime_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v evil_a and_o contrary_a to_o nature_n controversy_n 2._o in_o the_o deny_v that_o original_a righteousness_n be_v natural_a to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n create_v after_o god_n image_n in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n sin_n 3._o in_o affirm_v that_o mortality_n be_v natural_a to_o man_n before_o the_o fall_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o from_o god_n the_o author_n of_o nature_n apostolical_a 4._o in_o place_v paradise_n where_o the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n do_v not_o reach_v it_o which_o yet_o cover_v all_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v fifteen_o cubit_n high_o than_o the_o high_a mountain_n 5._o forsooth_o they_o will_v have_v that_o paradise_n or_o eden_n yet_o untouched_a that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o pleasant_a habitatian_n to_o henoch_v and_o elias_n
any_o internal_a virtue_n but_o a_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v several_o be_v the_o clergy_n the_o laity_n 2._o that_o clergy_n man_n be_v not_o hold_v under_o civil_a law_n by_o any_o coactive_a but_o only_a directive_n bond_n 3._o that_o clergy_n man_n break_v the_o civil_a law_n can_v yet_o be_v punish_v by_o any_o civil_a judge_n nor_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o secular_a magistrate_n 4._o that_o the_o good_n of_o the_o clergy_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a be_v free_a from_o the_o tribute_n and_o tax_n of_o secular_a prince_n 5._o that_o man_n be_v to_o be_v prepare_v for_o receive_v order_n by_o the_o first_o shave_v 6._o by_o how_o much_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o order_n any_o one_o be_v in_o by_o so_o much_o the_o large_a shave_v be_v he_o to_o be_v crown_v with_o 7._o that_o single_a life_n be_v always_o join_v to_o holy_a order_n by_o divine_a right_n the_o popish_a clergy_n a●●_n either_o secular_o and_o those_o either_o regulars_n of_o the_o low_a order_n of_o the_o high_a order_n which_o they_o call_v priest_n and_o be_v both_o the_o less_o as_o presbyter_n the_o great_a as_o bishop_n 8._o that_o the_o clergy_n man_n of_o the_o high_a order_n be_v priest_n properly_z so_o call_v which_o they_o say_v be_v institute_v to_o offer_v a_o external_a and_o real_a sacrifice_n 9_o the_o choice_n of_o bishop_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o divine_a right_n trent_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n receive_v jurisdiction_n from_o the_o pope_n 11._o the_o roman_a church_n have_v cardinal_n for_o sides-man_n to_o the_o pope_n upon_o who_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v turn_v as_o upon_o hinge_n 12._o these_o be_v to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 13._o that_o those_o whether_o they_o be_v bishop_n or_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o bishop_n archbishop_n primate_fw-la patriarch_n but_o to_o be_v equal_v even_o with_o king_n §_o 20._o of_o council_n and_o monastical_a vow_n 1._o they_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v evangelical_n council_n distinct_a from_o command_n which_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o perform_v but_o they_o who_o profess_v perfection_n and_o will_v deserve_v more_o and_o great_a thing_n than_o eternal_a life_n 2._o that_o the_o study_n of_o perfection_n be_v not_o of_o command_n but_o council_n 3._o such_o council_n be_v those_o of_o not_o seek_v revenge_n of_o love_v our_o adversary_n of_o not_o swear_v etc._n etc._n 4._o not_o to_o obey_v a_o council_n be_v no_o fin_n 5._o yet_o that_o some_o perfection_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o that_o consist_v in_o the_o full_a observation_n of_o the_o command_n 6._o that_o some_o other_o perfection_n be_v great_a and_o be_v necessary_a not_o simple_o for_o salvation_n but_o for_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n of_o glory_n and_o that_o consist_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o council_n 7._o by_o obedience_n to_o council_n man_n do_v supererogate_v 8._o that_o vow_a virginity_n and_o single_a life_n be_v most_o acceptable_a worship_n to_o god_n 9_o yea_o and_o the_o great_a satisfaction_n for_o sin_n and_o merit_n of_o eternal_a life_n 10._o a_o monastic_a life_n be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n 11._o all_o that_o be_v do_v by_o vow_n be_v a_o worship_n of_o god_n 12._o monastical_a vow_n do_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n and_o deserve_v eternal_a life_n 13._o our_o entrance_n into_o religion_n be_v a_o second_o baptism_n or_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o new_a baptism_n by_o which_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v for_o all_o former_a sin_n 14._o that_o perfection_n be_v to_o be_v place_v in_o true_a monastic_a vow_n as_o the_o vow_n of_o voluntary_a poverty_n the_o vow_n of_o perpetual_a chastity_n the_o vow_n of_o monastical_a obedience_n 15._o that_o voluntary_a poverty_n be_v right_o vow_v to_o god_n 16._o that_o its_o lawful_a lawful_a yea_o a_o meritorious_a work_n a_o work_n of_o perfection_n and_o supererogation_n in_o monk_n to_o live_v on_o beg_v 17._o it_o be_v lawful_a yea_o meritorious_a for_o the_o young_a man_n to_o vow_v single_a life_n for_o ever_o 18._o the_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n be_v to_o he_o keep_v by_o they_o who_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o continency_n 19_o there_o be_v none_o but_o may_v always_o contain_v if_o he_o will_n 20._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o child_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o vow_n against_o their_o parent_n consent_n 21._o they_o allow_v of_o great_a variety_n of_o vow_n which_o have_v various_a rule_n of_o life_n invent_v by_o man_n beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o as_o if_o there_o be_v great_a perfection_n in_o those_o rule_n then_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o more_o compendious_a way_n to_o perfection_n and_o salvation_n they_o teach_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o eternal_a life_n and_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n of_o glory_n be_v obtain_v 22._o they_o give_v the_o obedience_n which_o be_v due_a only_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o man_n that_o live_v after_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o franciscan_a domincan_n order_n etc._n etc._n 23._o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o first_o christian_n monk_n 24_o to_o they_o who_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o cowl_n of_o the_o monk_n especial_o of_o the_o franciscan_n they_o promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o some_o part_n coactive_a 25._o that_o prince_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o their_o subject_n on_o earth_n in_o all_o cause_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a 26._o they_o make_v prince_n subject_a to_o the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n §._o 21._o of_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n or_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v in_o the_o decalogue_n 1._o that_o regenerate_v and_o baptize_v person_n may_v perfect_o fulfil_v the_o law_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o fulfil_v it_o in_o this_o life_n 2._o easy_a the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n in_o this_o life_n be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a 3._o that_o every_o degree_n of_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n and_o expel_v all_o sin_n 4._o contrary_n that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o this_o life_n to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n 5._o and_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o all_o our_o strength_n neither_o be_v we_o bind_v not_o to_o have_v evil_a concupiscence_n 6._o that_o venial_a sin_n as_o they_o call_v they_o do_v not_o hinder_v that_o perfect_a obedience_n which_o be_v require_v in_o this_o life_n 7._o that_o the_o regenerate_a can_v do_v more_o than_o the_o law_n require_v 8._o they_o teach_v their_o disciple_n to_o worship_n god_n under_o a_o humane_a shape_n or_o figure_n 9_o that_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o call_v upon_o 10._o also_o saint_n that_o be_v dead_a be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o call_v upon_o 11._o that_o a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n such_o as_o they_o teach_v christ_n humanity_n wa●_n to_o be_v worship_v with_o but_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o saint_n ordinary_a worship_n 12._o that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v for_o so_o they_o touch_v they_o i_o worship_v and_o bless_v thy_o foot_n with_o which_o thou_o do_v tread_v down_o the_o old_a serpent_n head_n i_o worship_v and_o bless_v thy_o comely_a eye_n etc._n etc._n 23._o that_o according_a to_o the_o five_o letter_n of_o her_o name_n maria_n she_o be_v the_o mediatrix_fw-la of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o auxiliatrix_fw-la or_o helper_n of_o god_n and_o man_n the_o repairer_n of_o the_o weak_a the_o illuminater_n of_o the_o blind_a the_o advocate_n for_o all_o sin_n 14._o they_o name_v she_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n our_o lady_n and_o goddess_n the_o lady_n of_o angel_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o grace_n orat._n steph._n patracen_n in_o council_n late_a sess_z 10.666.6_o f._n 15._o for_o her_o honour_n and_o worship_n they_o have_v compose_v duty_n litany_n rosary_n and_o a_o psaltery_a all_o full_a of_o idolatry_n 16._o in_o the_o psaltery_a of_o mary_n whatsoever_o almost_o david_n have_v speak_v of_o god_n and_o christ_n they_o blasphemous_o give_v to_o she_o as_o for_o example_n o_o lady_n in_o thou_o have_v i_o put_v my_o trust_n deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o my_o enemy_n in_o psal_n 7._o and_o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o o_o lady_n with_o my_o whole_a heart_n psal_n 9_o i_o put_v my_o trust_n in_o thou_o o_o lady_n ps_n 10._o save_v i_o o_o lady_n psal_n 11._o keep_v i_o o_o lady_n because_o i_o have_v hope_v in_o thou_o psal_n 15._o the_o heaven_n declare_v thy_o glory_n o_o virgin_n mary_n psal_n 19_o to_o thou_o o_o lady_n have_v i_o lift_v up_o my_o soul_n psal_n 25._o have_v mercy_n on_o i_o o_o lady_n who_o
necessary_a and_o the_o ancient_a church_n use_v and_o we_o must_v use_v before_o it_o will_v be_v well_o with_o we_o 9_o 10._o some_o of_o they_o by_o satisfy_v god_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o the_o answer_v of_o his_o will_n concern_v so_o much_o of_o duty_n or_o suffering_n as_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o we_o but_o other_o worse_o 11._o the_o everlasting_a punishment_n be_v remit_v the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o god_n by_o the_o magistrate_n or_o by_o fatherly_a castigation_n may_v remain_v and_o part_n of_o it_o do_v remain_v on_o we_o all_o for_o he_o chasten_v who_o he_o love_v 15._o as_o satisfy_v god_n signify_v but_o a_o sincere_a do_v our_o duty_n we_o may_v be_v say_v to_o satisfy_v he_o but_o to_o make_v he_o reparation_n for_o the_o wrong_n we_o have_v do_v he_o or_o satisfy_v his_o law_n by_o perfect_a obedience_n or_o his_o vindictive_a justice_n by_o our_o suffering_n here_o be_v impossible_a 18._o chastisement_n be_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a species_n of_o punishment_n agree_v on_o 20_o 28_o etc._n etc._n as_o satisfy_v god_n be_v but_o please_v he_o all_o our_o duty_n satisfy_v 22._o prayer_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n be_v a_o delight_n and_o great_a benefit_n but_o accidental_o may_v be_v troublesome_a so_o far_o as_o we_o be_v carnal_a and_o therefore_o require_v some_o self-denial_n 24._o one_o man_n may_v do_v a_o duty_n that_o conduce_v to_o another_o spiritual_a good_a but_o not_o by_o merit_n 26._o the_o right_a use_n of_o absolution_n apply_v christ●s_n blood_n declar●●●●ly_o and_o be_v too_o much_o lay_v by_o in_o most_o church_n 1._o god_n love_n or_o favour_n be_v our_o radical_a grace_n from_o which_o flow_v both_o relative_n effect_n in_o pardon_n justification_n adoption_n and_o physical_a in_o our_o renovation_n all_o which_o be_v call_v also_o grace_n 3._o to_o deny_v either_o relative_n or_o inherent_a grace_n be_v to_o deny_v that_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n the_o necessity_n of_o pardon_n at_o least_o many_o of_o they_o confess_v 4._o no_o doubt_n but_o all_o have_v so_o much_o grace_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v and_o be_v save_v if_o they_o will_v sincere_o because_o though_o velle_fw-la credere_fw-la be_v not_o credere_fw-la as_o doctor_n twiss_n answer_v it_o yet_o credere_fw-la est_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la as_o austin_n answer_v it_o but_o the_o papist_n especial_o the_o dominican_n affirm_v not_o sufficient_a grace_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v give_v to_o those_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o gospel_n but_o only_o sufficient_a grace_n to_o ●●_o that_o which_o tend_v to_o this_o further_a grace_n 6._o the_o will_n be_v first_o passive_a in_o receive_v the_o divine_a influx_n but_o active_a in_o the_o elicit_v its_o o●●w●a_n 7._o the_o will_n have_v natural_a power_n or_o faculty_n to_o resist_v or_o yield_v which_o will_v not_o be_v bring_v into_o act_n for_o yield_v because_o it_o want_v moral_a power_n that_o be_v it_o be_v dis-inclined_n but_o to_o resist_v it_o have_v too_o much_o moral_a power_n which_o be_v impotency_n yet_o such_o as_o grace_n can_v heal_v 1._o pervert_v the_o term_n they_o cause_v a_o strife_n about_o a_o word_n 2._o some_o of_o they_o make_v merit_n of_o congruity_n which_o they_o say_v precede_v justication_n to_o be_v proper_o no_o merit_n and_o some_o of_o they_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o proper_a merit_n of_o condignity_n at_o all_o but_o other_o be_v gross_a in_o this_o 3._o the_o term_n remission_n also_o they_o abuse_v mean_v by_o it_o the_o change_n of_o our_o quality_n or_o put_v away_o sin_n itself_o though_o forgiveness_n they_o take_v in_o with_o it_o and_o so_o they_o make_v many_o verbal_a controversy_n 4._o this_o be_v true_a of_o sanctification_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n they_o mean_v by_o justification_n but_o by_o this_o abuse_n of_o the_o term_n they_o misinterpret_v scripture_n and_o also_o they_o so_o much_o hide_v the_o very_a be_v of_o pardon_n by_o pervert_v the_o word_n that_o signify_v it_o that_o its_o hard_a to_o find_v in_o some_o of_o they_o whether_o they_o confess_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o pardon_v 6._o as_o to_o the_o act_n they_o make_v it_o their_o own_o by_o merit_a grace_n but_o the_o habit_n and_o the_o grace_n assist_v they_o say_v be_v of_o god_n and_o the_o act_n say_v most_o 7._o this_o be_v their_o verbal_a error_n no_o doubt_n that_o which_o they_o mean_v by_o justification_n that_o be_v sanctification_n consist_v in_o inherent_a grace_n 8._o this_o they_o say_v of_o justification_n take_v for_o sanctification_n but_o not_o as_o take_v for_o pardon_n but_o they_o be_v lead_v still_o to_o misinterpret_v scripture_n by_o misunderstand_v the_o word_n 9_o still_o they_o mean_v sanctification_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o justification_n but_o they_o confess_v that_o christ_n suffering_n and_o obedience_n be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o pardon_n and_o renovation_n both_o which_o they_o use_v to_o comprise_v in_o the_o word_n justification_n 16._o they_o may_v as_o well_o talk_v of_o a_o three_o and_o four_o justification_n for_o sanctification_n have_v more_o degree_n than_o two_o but_o doubtless_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o that_o which_o they_o mean_v by_o a_o second_o justification_n if_o they_o leave_v out_o merit_n for_o there_o be_v actual_a obedience_n and_o increase_n of_o grace_n the_o scripture_n say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v by_o assent_v to_o his_o gospel_n and_o accept_v he_o entire_o as_o christ_n that_o be_v by_o become_v true_a christian_n or_o christ_n disciple_n for_o a_o believer_n and_o a_o disciple_n in_o the_o gospel_n usual_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n 11._o it_o do_v sanctify_v as_o a_o part_n of_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o it_o be_v the_o receptive_a condition_n of_o pardon_n 12._o i_o will_v they_o say_v no_o more_o but_o that_o it_o dispose_v to_o it_o for_o than_o they_o will_v not_o say_v it_o deserve_v it_o 14._o still_o they_o mean_v sanctify_v 15._o a_o absurd_a speech_n but_o they_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o form_n of_o faith_n as_o faith_n but_o of_o faith_n and_o all_o other_o grace_n as_o save_v or_o as_o a_o new_a life_n and_o we_o agree_v that_o faith_n be_v principal_o in_o the_o will_n and_o the_o velle_fw-la be_v by_o the_o schoolman_n call_v the_o diligere_fw-la 16._o it_o be_v unreasonable_a for_o they_o to_o call_v that_o justify_v faith_n which_o want_v that_o which_o they_o take_v to_o be_v the_o form_n of_o it_o 18._o they_o say_v it_o must_v be_v explicit_a in_o some_o point_n which_o we_o call_v essential_a and_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o christ_n as_o satisfy_a justice_n and_o merit_v for_o we_o pardon_v and_o sanctification_n 19_o that_o be_v but_o some_o of_o they_o 20._o they_o manage_v this_o controversy_n in_o the_o dark_a not_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o term_n of_o the_o question_n 21._o neither_o faith_n nor_o work_n be_v proper_a cause_n 28._o so_o do_v the_o ancient_n even_o augustine_n himself_o and_o too_o many_o protestant_n 29._o this_o also_o be_v too_o common_a with_o the_o ancient_n and_o be_v now_o with_o the_o say_a protestant_n 30_o some_o of_o they_o yield_v a_o certainty_n of_o present_a remission_n and_o justification_n and_o moral_a conjectural_a certainty_n of_o salvation_n 34._o to_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mercy_n but_o to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n write_v in_o scripture_n that_o i_o be_o pardon_v be_v not_o a_o duty_n for_o it_o be_v not_o there_o 35._o about_o this_o they_o differ_v see_v magro_n in_o send_v that_o faith_n have_v certain_a evidence_n which_o ariminensis_n and_o other_o confute_v ●aying_v it_o have_v evidence_n of_o credibility_n but_o not_o of_o certainty_n 1._o the_o mere_a appetite_n be_v no_o sin_n but_o the_o corruption_n and_o rebellion_n of_o it_o be_v 2._o i_o will_v we_o can_v see_v one_o of_o they_o do_v it_o once_o it_o be_v a_o shameful_a argue_v for_o perfection_n by_o bare_a word_n when_o none_o of_o they_o will_v give_v we_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o by_o their_o own_o example_n 3._o they_o that_o believe_v this_o know_v not_o themselves_o 5._o piscator_fw-la and_o other_o of_o we_o maintain_v this_o though_o a_o meritorious_a efficiency_n we_o all_o deny_v 7._o the_o scotist_n and_o many_o more_o of_o they_o deny_v this_o but_o so_o do_v not_o bellarmine_n and_o many_o other_o 8._o waldensis_n und_fw-ge other_o of_o they_o deny_v all_o merit_n but_o that_o be_v not_o common_a see_v instance_n in_o my_o confession_n 6._o some_o of_o they_o say_v they_o be_v punish_v also_o with_o the_o pain_n of_o sense_n see_v concius_fw-la tractat._n in_o the_o end_n of_o jansenii_n augustin_n 16._o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o in_o such_o case_n of_o fact_n and_o particular_a judgement_n there●n_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o so_o no_o papist_n living_n can_v be_v certain_a but_o that_o they_o pray_v to_o the_o damn_a soul_n in_o hell_n who_o the_o pope_n mistake_o canonize_v 1_o 2._o yet_o we_o confess_v a_o catholic_a visible_a continue_a church_n 3._o some_o of_o our_o own_o say_v as_o much_o of_o late_a but_o they_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n only_o 4._o this_o be_v the_o heart_n of_o popery_n 1._o hence_o popery_n and_o papist_n be_v denominate_v 17._o much_o of_o these_o by_o the_o french_a be_v ascribe_v to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o deny_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o well_o be_v they_o agree_v in_o their_o fundamental_o 5._o the_o french_a agree_v not_o to_o these_o 1._o of_o the_o visible_a church_n we_o say_v the_o same_o 10._o the_o spaniard_n hinder_v the_o pass_v of_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 5._o 6._o have_v the_o quaker_n learn_v this_o distinction_n of_o perfection_n yet_o 25._o in_o all_o cause_n material_o they_o be_v but_o not_o in_o all_o formal_o for_o they_o be_v not_o the_o supreme_a in_o every_o sort_n of_o government_n that_o be_v in_o ministerial_a directive_n but_o in_o their_o own_o sort_n that_o be_v coactive_a 2._o what_o need_v you_o confess_v sin_n that_o can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n so_o easy_o out_o of_o your_o own_o mouth_n be_v you_o judge_v now_o that_o do_v not_o that_o which_o you_o think_v so_o easy_a 4._o other_o of_o they_o say_v the_o contrary_n 35._o i_o will_v they_o have_v no_o company_n in_o this_o error_n 72_o 73._o this_o may_v give_v we_o some_o light_n into_o the_o juggle_n of_o our_o time_n
the_o safe_a religion_n or_o three_o disputation_n for_o the_o reform_a catholic_a religion_n against_o popery_n prove_v that_o popery_n be_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n the_o plain_a reason_n and_o common_a judgement_n of_o sense_n itself_o by_o richard_n baxter_n contra_fw-la rationem_fw-la nemo_fw-la sobrius_fw-la contra_fw-la scripturas_fw-la nemo_fw-la christianus_n contra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la nemo_fw-la pacificus_fw-la senserit_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 6._o fine_a london_n print_v by_o abraham_n miller_n for_o thomas_n vnderhill_n at_o the_o anchor_n and_o bible_n in_o paul_n churchyard_n and_o francis_n titan_n at_o the_o three_o dagger_n in_o fleetstreet_n 1657._o to_o the_o protestant_a reader_n when_o the_o motion_n be_v first_o make_v for_o the_o publish_v of_o these_o paper_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v as_o the_o cast_n of_o water_n into_o the_o sea_n so_o great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o learned_a write_n of_o protestant_n divine_n against_o the_o papist_n which_o will_v never_o be_v well_o answer_v that_o the_o most_o elaborate_a addition_n may_v seem_v superfluous_a much_o more_o these_o hasty_a disputation_n prepare_v but_o for_o a_o exercise_n which_o be_v the_o recreation_n of_o a_o few_o countrey-minister_n at_o a_o monthly_a meeting_n when_o they_o ease_v themselves_o of_o their_o ordinary_a work_n but_o upon_o further_a consideration_n i_o see_v it_o be_v the_o cast_n of_o water_n upon_o a_o threaten_a fire_n which_o the_o sea_n itself_o do_v but_o restrain_v it_o be_v more_o engine_n than_o a_o few_o that_o be_v open_o or_o secret_o at_o work_n at_o this_o time_n to_o captivate_v these_o nation_n again_o to_o the_o roman_a pope_n when_o so_o many_o hundred_o if_o not_o thousand_o be_v night_n and_o day_n contrive_v our_o seduction_n under_o the_o name_n of_o reconcile_a we_o to_o the_o church_n if_o no_o body_n counterwork_n they_o what_o may_v they_o not_o do_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o we_o have_v have_v defender_n and_o that_o their_o book_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o world_n old_a write_n be_v lay_v by_o though_o much_o strong_a than_o any_o new_a one_o but_o new_a one_o be_v soon_o take_v up_o and_o read_v the_o papist_n have_v of_o late_o be_v very_o plentiful_a and_o yet_o very_o spare_v in_o their_o write_n plentiful_a of_o such_o as_o run_v among_o the_o simple_a injudicious_a people_n in_o secret_a so_o that_o the_o country_n swarm_n with_o they_o but_o spare_v of_o such_o as_o may_v provoke_v any_o learned_a man_n to_o a_o confutation_n that_o so_o they_o may_v in_o time_n disuse_n we_o from_o those_o study_n and_o so_o disable_v the_o ministry_n therein_o and_o catch_v we_o when_o we_o be_v secure_a through_o a_o seem_a peace_n and_o fall_v upon_o we_o when_o we_o have_v lose_v our_o strength_n and_o i_o be_o much_o afraid_a that_o the_o generality_n of_o our_o people_n perhaps_o of_o the_o best_a be_v already_o so_o much_o disuse_v from_o these_o study_n as_o to_o be_v much_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o popery_n and_o much_o more_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o preservative_n against_o it_o and_o a_o through_o confutation_n of_o they_o so_o that_o if_o papist_n be_v once_o but_o as_o full_o set_v out_o among_o we_o in_o their_o own_o likeness_n as_o they_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o quaker_n and_o other_o sect_n what_o work_n will_v you_o see_v in_o many_o place_n i_o doubt_v many_o will_v follow_v their_o pernicius_fw-la way_n and_o fall_v like_o sheep_n of_o a_o common_a rot_n or_o people_n in_o a_o rage_a pestilence_n especial_o if_o they_o have_v but_o the_o countenance_n of_o the_o time_n not_o through_o their_o strength_n but_o because_o our_o people_n be_v naked_a and_o unmeet_a for_o a_o defence_n the_o work_n that_o now_o they_o be_v upon_o be_v 1._o by_o division_n and_o revile_v the_o minister_n to_o loosen_v the_o people_n from_o their_o guide_n that_o they_o may_v be_v as_o a_o masterless_a dog_n that_o will_v follow_v any_o body_n that_o will_v whistle_v he_o 2._o to_o take_v down_o the_o minister_n maintenance_n and_o encouragement_n that_o they_o may_v be_v disable_v so_o vigorous_o to_o resist_v they_o 3._o to_o hinder_v their_o union_n that_o they_o may_v abate_v their_o strength_n and_o find_v they_o work_v against_o each_o other_o 4._o to_o procure_v a_o liberty_n of_o seduce_v all_o they_o can_v under_o the_o name_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n that_o so_o they_o may_v have_v as_o fair_a a_o game_n for_o it_o as_o we_o and_o ignorance_n and_o the_o common_a corruption_n of_o nature_n especial_o so_o heighten_v by_o a_o custom_n in_o sin_n do_v befriend_v the_o devil_n cause_n much_o more_o than_o god_n or_o else_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o godly_a be_v so_o few_o and_o error_n idolatry_n and_o impiety_n do_v so_o abound_v in_o all_o the_o earth_n 5._o to_o break_v the_o common_a people_n into_o as_o many_o sect_n and_o party_n as_o they_o can_v that_o they_o may_v not_o only_o employ_v they_o against_o one_o another_o but_o also_o may_v hence_o fetch_v matter_n of_o reproach_n against_o our_o profession_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n 6._o to_o plead_v under_o the_o name_n of_o seeker_n against_o the_o certainty_n of_o all_o religion_n that_o man_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o think_v that_o they_o must_v be_v either_o of_o the_o popish_a profession_n or_o of_o none_o and_o indeed_o when_o all_o sect_n have_v do_v their_o worst_a it_o be_v but_o two_o that_o we_o be_v in_o any_o great_a danger_n of_o and_o of_o those_o i_o think_v we_o be_v in_o more_o danger_n than_o the_o most_o be_v aware_a of_o and_o that_o be_v 1._o papist_n who_o plead_v not_o as_o other_o party_n only_o by_o the_o tongue_n but_o by_o exciting_a prince_n and_o state_n against_o we_o and_o dispute_v with_o the_o faggot_n or_o hatchet_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o if_o we_o have_v not_o argument_n that_o will_v confute_v a_o navy_n a_o army_n or_o a_o powder-plot_n we_o can_v do_v no_o good_a against_o they_o 2._o profaneness_n animate_v by_o apostate_n infidel_n this_o be_v the_o religion_n that_o man_n be_v bear_v in_o and_o man_n that_o natural_o be_v so_o endear_v to_o their_o lust_n that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v true_a will_v easy_o hearken_v to_o he_o that_o tell_v they_o it_o be_v false_a yea_o so_o much_o do_v popery_n befriend_v man_n in_o a_o vicious_a course_n that_o some_o be_v apt_a to_o join_v these_o together_o think_v at_o the_o heart_n that_o christianity_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n but_o yet_o for_o fear_v it_o shall_v prove_v true_a they_o will_v be_v papist_n that_o they_o may_v have_v that_o easy_a remedy_n for_o a_o reserve_n if_o god_n will_v preserve_v we_o but_o from_o these_o two_o danger_n popery_n and_o profaneness_n animate_v by_o infidelity_n it_o will_v go_v well_o with_o england_n the_o most_o of_o my_o former_a write_n have_v be_v bend_v against_o the_o late_a i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o let_v go_v this_o one_o against_o the_o former_a that_o so_o i_o may_v entice_v the_o common_a professor_n to_o a_o little_a more_o serious_a study_n of_o these_o point_n and_o furnish_v they_o with_o some_o familiar_a argument_n that_o be_v suit_v to_o their_o capacity_n that_o every_o deceiver_n may_v not_o find_v they_o unarm_v and_o here_o i_o think_v it_o best_a to_o defend_v our_o own_o profession_n and_o overthrow_v they_o in_o the_o main_a and_o not_o to_o stand_v long_o upon_o particular_a controversy_n except_o that_o one_o of_o the_o resolution_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o great_a difference_n yet_o that_o private_a unstudy_v man_n may_v understand_v wherein_o the_o particular_a difference_n lie_v i_o have_v give_v they_o a_o catalogue_n of_o they_o in_o other_o man_n word_n in_o the_o end_n as_o resolve_v not_o to_o do_v it_o in_o my_o own_o in_o short_a i_o have_v here_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o popery_n be_v against_o scripture_n reason_n sense_n and_o against_o the_o unity_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o either_o scripture_n be_v true_a or_o not_o true_a if_o not_o popery_n be_v not_o true_a which_o plead_v its_o warrant_n from_o it_o and_o some_o of_o they_o argue_v as_o if_o they_o purpose_v to_o disprove_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o imitate_v samson_n in_o pull_v down_o the_o house_n on_o their_o own_o head_n and_o we_o in_o revenge_n for_o the_o dishonour_n they_o have_v suffer_v by_o the_o scriture_n if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o nothing_o more_o true_a than_o popery_n be_v not_o true_a which_o palpable_o contradict_v it_o as_o in_o the_o point_n of_o latin_a service_n and_o deny_v the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o many_o other_o be_v most_o evident_a
2._o either_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o popery_n be_v deceitful_a which_o make_v this_o its_o principal_a pretence_n for_o the_o usurp_a the_o universal_a headship_n if_o it_o be_v one_o than_o popery_n be_v deceitful_a which_o be_v renounce_v by_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o renounce_v they_o and_o separate_v from_o they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n who_o never_o yet_o in_o his_o great_a height_n have_v the_o actual_a government_n of_o half_a the_o christian_a world_n 3._o either_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v sound_a or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unsound_a that_o be_v swear_v to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n only_o according_a to_o their_o consent_n if_o it_o be_v sound_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unsound_a that_o arrogate_v a_o uiniversal_a government_n and_o infallibility_n and_o build_v upon_o a_o foundation_n that_o be_v never_o allow_v by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n as_o in_o the_o three_o disput_n i_o have_v full_o prove_v and_o which_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n do_v still_o reject_v 4._o either_o reason_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v renounce_v or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v than_o none_o can_v be_v papist_n but_o mad_a man_n if_o not_o than_o popery_n must_v be_v renounce_v which_o found_v our_o very_a faith_n upon_o impossibility_n and_o teach_v man_n of_o necessity_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o many_o the_o like_o which_o be_v afterward_o lay_v open_a 5._o either_o our_o five_o sense_n and_o the_o judgement_n make_v upon_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a or_o not_o if_o not_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v fallible_a and_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v t●●●●ed_v for_o when_o all_o their_o tradition_n be_v by_o hear_v or_o read_v they_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o ever_o they_o hear_v or_o read_v any_o such_o thing_n and_o we_o must_v all_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o they_o speak_v or_o write_v it_o and_o then_o we_o must_v not_o only_o subscribe_v to_o fransc_n sanchez_n quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la scitur_fw-la but_o also_o say_v that_o nihil_fw-la certo_fw-la creditur_fw-la but_o if_o sense_n be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v not_o only_o fallible_a but_o certain_o false_a deceiver_n and_o deceive_v for_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n tell_v the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o they_o take_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n do_v tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v i_o see_v that_o its_o bread_n and_o wine_n i_o smell_v it_o i_o feel_v it_o i_o taste_v it_o and_o somewhat_o i_o hear_v to_o further_a my_o assurance_n and_o yet_o if_o popery_n be_v not_o false_a it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n one_o will_v think_v the_o dull_a reader_n may_v be_v quick_o here_o resolve_v whether_o popery_n be_v true_a or_o false_a look_v on_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n touch_v it_o smell_v it_o taste_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o can_v but_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v indeed_o bread_n and_o wine_n thou_o may_v be_v as_o sure_a that_o popery_n be_v a_o delusion_n and_o if_o thou_o can_v but_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o thou_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o council_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o doctor_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o if_o other_o man_n sense_n be_v deceitful_a they_o and_o thou_o be_v so_o too_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v urge_v in_o the_o follow_a disputation_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o observe_v how_o much_o they_o be_v at_o odds_o among_o themselves_o about_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o how_o near_o some_o of_o they_o come_v to_o we_o of_o late_a as_o in_o white_n be_v sonus_n buccinae_fw-la and_o doctor_n h._n holden_n de_fw-fr resol_n fidei_fw-la and_o in_o cressy_n and_o vane_n and_o other_o may_v be_v see_v and_o their_o silly_a follower_n in_o england_n think_v very_o that_o they_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n and_o how_o solicitous_a cressy_n and_o other_o be_v to_o take_v that_o infallibility_n out_o of_o our_o way_n as_o a_o stumble_a stone_n which_o the_o italian_n and_o most_o of_o they_o make_v the_o foundation_n and_o chief_a cornerstone_n what_o a_o task_n be_v it_o to_o reconcile_v but_o bellarmine_n and_o holden_n knot_n and_o cressy_a both_o in_o english_a white_a have_v so_o much_o wit_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o rushworth_n dialogue_n when_o he_o write_v in_o english_a to_o carry_v on_o the_o matter_n as_o smooth_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n but_o when_o he_o write_v in_o latin_a how_o many_o way_n of_o resolution_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v unsound_a can_v he_o find_v among_o the_o papist_n as_o different_a from_o his_o own_o vid._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o theolog_fw-la tract_n 1._o sect._n 28.29_o reader_n adhere_v to_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o arise_v at_o jerusalem_n be_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n contain_v all_o that_o be_v christian_n renounce_v not_o right_a reason_n or_o thy_o sense_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o light_n which_o be_v vouchsafe_v thou_o and_o then_o thou_o shall_v be_v safe_a from_o popery_n and_o all_o other_o pernicious_a damn_v error_n marc._n 10._o 1656_o 7._o r.b._n to_o the_o literate_a romanist_n that_o will_v read_v this_o book_n man_n and_o brethren_n a_o write_v that_o so_o much_o concern_v your_o cause_n i_o think_v shall_v tender_v you_o some_o account_n of_o its_o publication_n especial_o when_o i_o know_v that_o not_o only_o the_o divulge_v but_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v therein_o be_v so_o heinous_a a_o matter_n in_o your_o eye_n that_o if_o i_o be_v in_o your_o power_n the_o suspicion_n of_o it_o may_v bring_v i_o to_o the_o rack_n and_o the_o strappado_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o it_o will_v expose_v i_o to_o the_o flame_n i_o have_v many_o time_n consider_v that_o you_o can_v never_o sure_o endure_v to_o torment_v man_n in_o your_o inquisition_n and_o consume_v they_o to_o ash_n and_o so_o industrious_o to_o embroyle_v the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o blood_n and_o misery_n to_o work_v they_o to_o your_o mind_n and_o set_v up_o your_o own_o way_n if_o you_o do_v not_o think_v it_o right_n and_o think_v they_o exceed_v bid_v who_o you_o thus_o destroy_v i_o find_v that_o my_o own_o heart_n will_v serve_v i_o to_o use_v toad_n and_o serpent_n and_o destroy_a vermin_n half_o as_o bad_a as_o you_o do_v protestant_n that_o be_v to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n though_o not_o to_o torment_v they_o so_o long_o but_o for_o gentle_a and_o more_o harmless_a creature_n i_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o great_a reluctancy_n of_o my_o nature_n i_o must_v needs_o therefore_o by_o your_o work_n bear_v you_o record_v that_o you_o have_v a_o zeal_n for_o god_n but_o so_o have_v some_o before_o you_o that_o guide_v it_o not_o by_o knowledge_n rom._n 10.2_o and_o i_o suppose_v your_o way_n be_v undoubted_o right_a in_o your_o own_o eye_n or_o else_o you_o dare_v never_o prosecute_v it_o with_o such_o violence_n and_o yet_o one_o that_o be_v once_o as_o zealous_a in_o his_o way_n and_o shut_v up_o the_o saint_n in_o prison_n and_o receive_v authority_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n and_o compel_v they_o to_o blaspheam_n do_v afterward_o call_v all_o this_o but_o madness_n act_v 26.9_o 10_o 11._o but_o methinks_v i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v when_o i_o see_v man_n differ_v from_o i_o with_o such_o height_n of_o confidence_n to_o give_v they_o some_o reason_n of_o my_o differ_a thought_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n of_o success_n that_o i_o can_v expect_v from_o this_o account_n to_o make_v any_o addition_n or_o alteration_n in_o your_o belief_n i_o have_v no_o great_a reason_n to_o expect_v while_o you_o read_v my_o word_n with_o this_o prejudice_n that_o they_o be_v damnable_a heresy_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o who_o you_o suppose_v infallible_a for_o the_o fashion_v of_o your_o faith_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o i_o expect_v satisfaction_n from_o you_o with_o any_o great_a hope_n i_o shall_v but_o dissemble_v for_o i_o have_v not_o be_v negligent_a in_o read_v such_o write_n of_o your_o own_o as_o may_v acquaint_v i_o both_o with_o
your_o faith_n and_o your_o theological_a opinion_n and_o can_v scarce_o reasonable_o expect_v that_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v say_v more_o to_o satisfy_v i_o than_o these_o contain_v for_o any_o of_o you_o to_o recite_v the_o canon_n or_o decretal_n of_o your_o church_n or_o pope_n in_o a_o write_n to_o i_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o i_o have_v they_o at_o hand_n already_o or_o can_v have_v they_o at_o a_o trice_n and_o if_o you_o say_v any_o thing_n to_o i_o by_o way_n of_o answer_n which_o be_v not_o in_o those_o canon_n or_o decretal_n or_o solemn_o pronounce_v already_o by_o your_o church_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la you_o can_v give_v i_o little_a assurance_n of_o its_o verity_n but_o your_o own_o writing_n must_v incur_v all_o those_o reproach_n which_o knot_n bestow_v on_o the_o doctrine_n of_o chillingworth_n and_o we_o hear_v from_o you_o so_o frequent_o for_o ●he_n defect_n of_o infallibility_n but_o yet_o let_v what_o will_v come_v of_o it_o i_o shall_v leave_v some_o slender_a testimony_n to_o posterity_n that_o i_o dissent_v not_o from_o ●o_o many_o confident_a man_n without_o give_v they_o ●ome_o of_o the_o reason_n of_o my_o dissent_n i_o be_v bear_v and_o breed_v here_o among_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o reform_a catholik_n christian_n religion_n when_o i_o be_v young_a i_o judge_v of_o ●our_n profession_n as_o i_o be_v teach_v and_o the_o prejudice_n which_o i_o receive_v against_o it_o do_v grow_v up_o ●ith_v i_o as_o you_o do_v against_o we_o yet_o receive_v much_o good_a to_o my_o soul_n by_o parson_n book_n of_o resolution_n correct_v when_o i_o be_v but_o sixteen_o year_n of_o age_n it_o run_v much_o in_o my_o mind_n that_o sure_a there_o be_v some_o among_o you_o that_o have_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n when_o i_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o by_o age_n and_o study_n i_o make_v some_o diligent_a search_n into_o your_o writer_n that_o i_o may_v know_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o but_o still_o i_o confess_v i_o read_v they_o with_o prejudice_n and_o partiality_n till_o at_o last_o i_o attain_v as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v understand_v by_o my_o own_o heart_n such_o a_o love_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o impartiality_n in_o my_o study_n and_o judgement_n of_o these_o thing_n that_o i_o read_v your_o writer_n with_o as_o free_v a_o mind_n i_o mean_v as_o willing_a to_o find_v what_o truth_n be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v as_o i_o do_v the_o write_n of_o protestant_n themselves_o when_o i_o have_v discover_v undoubted_o that_o in_o some_o doctrinal_a point_n the_o difference_n be_v make_v by_o most_o on_o both_o side_n much_o great_a than_o they_o be_v and_o much_o great_a than_o the_o most_o learned_a on_o both_o side_n tha●_n have_v any_o moderation_n do_v conceive_v they_o to_o be_v i_o be_v the_o more_o confirm_v in_o my_o resolution_n to_o be_v impartial_a in_o my_o study_n and_o so_o have_v proceed_v if_o i_o be_v a_o competent_a judge_n of_o my_o own_o mind_n to_o this_o day_n and_o after_o all_o i_o be_o leave_v in_o the_o dissatisfaction_n which_o i_o here_o manifest_a and_o by_o what_o shep_v my_o averseness_n to_o your_o wa●_n have_v be_v bring_v on_o since_o i_o begin_v to_o search_v in_o to_o it_o impartial_o i_o shall_v here_o further_o declare_v first_o i_o have_v be_v most_o offend_v with_o those_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n that_o do_v most_o notorious_o run_v against_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o here_o the_o case_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o without_o any_o singular_a acuteness_n it_o may_v be_v discern_v as_o in_o your_o latin_a service_n of_o god_n with_o those_o that_o understand_v it_o not_o your_o administer_a the_o bread_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n without_o the_o cup_n that_o image-worship_n which_o your_o writer_n do_v maintain_v forbid_v priest_n marriage_n with_o many_o such_o like_a and_o yet_o suspect_v my_o own_o understanding_n i_o read_v what_o your_o writer_n say_v also_o for_o these_o but_o when_o i_o see_v how_o palpable_o they_o force_v the_o text_n it_o increase_v my_o dislike_n and_o then_o know_v that_o you_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n in_o these_o and_o find_v withal_o that_o you_o build_v your_o faith_n upon_o your_o church_n infallibility_n i_o be_v exceed_o turn_v against_o your_o profession_n when_o i_o see_v your_o foundation_n so_o clear_o overthrow_v but_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o all_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n that_o more_o offend_v i_o than_o the_o tendency_n of_o your_o doctrine_n to_o destroy_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o people_n and_o lead_v they_o on_o in_o ignorance_n and_o please_v and_o deceive_v they_o by_o a_o company_n of_o ceremony_n instead_o of_o a_o reasonable_a service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o your_o worship_n i_o can_v never_o digest_v other_o thing_n do_v grate_v very_o hard_o upon_o those_o truth_n which_o i_o be_v confirm_v in_o but_o these_o go_v against_o the_o very_a bend_v of_o my_o heart_n and_o cross_v the_o very_a end_n of_o my_o religion_n and_o my_o life_n your_o keep_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o laity_n as_o far_o as_o you_o do_v and_o maintain_v it_o so_o common_o to_o be_v the_o original_a of_o heresy_n to_o translate_v they_o into_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o make_v it_o so_o deadly_a a_o crime_n to_o have_v a_o bible_n which_o they_o can_v read_v with_o your_o latin_a service_n aforesaid_a and_o the_o formality_n and_o scenical_a worship_n in_o which_o you_o train_v up_o the_o ignorant_a vulgar_a with_o many_o other_o thing_n in_o your_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n be_v such_o as_o leave_v i_o but_o little_a room_n for_o deliberation_n whither_o i_o shall_v own_v they_o or_o not_o because_o they_o be_v so_o plain_o against_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v these_o thing_n come_v under_o my_o consideration_n in_o a_o carnal_a state_n when_o the_o flesh_n be_v my_o end_n and_o not_o god_n i_o know_v not_o how_o i_o shall_v have_v entertain_v they_o but_o your_o own_o doctor_n consent_n that_o god_n must_v be_v my_o end_n and_o chief_o love_v desire_a and_o seek_v and_o will_v you_o teach_v a_o man_n this_o and_o whoodwinke_v he_o when_o you_o have_v do_v will_v you_o bid_v he_o love_n god_n and_o keep_v he_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o will_v you_o bid_v he_o desire_v and_o seek_v he_o and_o when_o you_o have_v do_v lock_v he_o up_o in_o the_o dark_a or_o will_v you_o bid_v he_o serve_v and_o obey_v he_o and_o yet_o forbid_v he_o to_o search_v after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o law_n and_o will_n if_o you_o will_v bring_v i_o to_o be_v of_o these_o opinion_n your_o reason_n will_v be_v to_o as_o much_o purpose_n as_o if_o you_o shall_v persuade_v i_o to_o put_v out_o my_o eye_n and_o put_v they_o in_o your_o pocket_n for_o fear_v of_o miss_v my_o way_n in_o my_o race_n when_o my_o life_n be_v at_o the_o stake_n or_o as_o if_o you_o shall_v persuade_v i_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o plough_v and_o sow_v and_o merchandise_n and_o yet_o to_o seek_v after_o provision_n and_o riches_n in_o the_o world_n i_o be_o as_o easy_o reconcile_v as_o another_o to_o those_o that_o step_v out_o of_o the_o path_n that_o i_o be_o in_o if_o they_o go_v towards_o the_o same_o end_n but_o if_o you_o will_v teach_v i_o to_o turn_v my_o back_n upon_o heaven_n as_o the_o only_a way_n to_o attain_v it_o this_o will_v not_o easy_o down_o with_o i_o i_o know_v that_o god_n be_v light_n and_o with_o he_o be_v no_o darkness_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o his_o spirit_n be_v the_o illuminater_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o word_n be_v a_o light_n to_o our_o foot_n and_o giveth_z wisdom_n to_o the_o simple_a and_o yet_o will_v you_o have_v we_o refuse_v this_o light_n and_o choose_v the_o darkness_n i_o know_v that_o satan_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n &_o a_o state_n of_o death_n be_v a_o state_n of_o darkness_n tend_v to_o outer_a darkness_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o save_a way_n of_o god_n to_o translate_v man_n out_o of_o darkeness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n and_o yet_o will_v you_o persuade_v i_o that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o life_n what_o a_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o this_o doctrine_n of_o you_o and_o the_o very_a scope_n of_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a writer_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o gracious_a soul_n solomon_n will_v have_v man_n to_o hide_v the_o commandment_n with_o they_o and_o incline_v their_o ear_n to_o wisdom_n and_o apply_v their_o heart_n to_o understanding_n and_o cry_v after_o knowledge_n and_o lift_v up_o their_o voiec_n for_o understanding_n and_o seek_v for_o it_o as_o silver_n and_o search_v after_o it_o as_o for_o hide_a treasure_n prov._n 2.2_o
3_o 4._o and_o be_v your_o doctrine_n like_o this_o isaiah_n bid_v to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o testimony_n be_v 8.20_o and_o the_o berean_o be_v commend_v for_o search_v the_o scripture_n daily_o to_o see_v whether_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o that_o be_v teach_v they_o even_o by_o apostle_n and_o will_v you_o forbid_v this_o and_o burn_v man_n for_o to_o promote_v their_o salvation_n do_v not_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o laity_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o clergy_n you_o must_v strip_v i_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o reduce_v my_o mind_n to_o a_o state_n of_o darkness_n before_o i_o can_v ever_o entertain_v these_o principle_n of_o darkness_n for_o light_n and_o darkness_n will_v not_o have_v communion_n if_o by_o argument_n you_o will_v persuade_v i_o so_o plain_o against_o the_o life_n of_o nature_n as_o that_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o blind_v or_o kill_v myself_o in_o order_n to_o my_o good_a there_o be_v somewhat_o within_o i_o that_o will_v confute_v they_o beside_o reason_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n also_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o self-preservation_n as_o for_o your_o reason_n that_o man_n must_v let_v alone_o the_o scripture_n and_o hearken_v to_o their_o teacher_n for_o fear_n of_o heresy_n it_o will_v never_o take_v with_o i_o till_o i_o can_v believe_v you_o to_o be_v less_o suspect_v guide_n then_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o till_o i_o can_v believe_v that_o a_o scholar_n may_v not_o learn_v of_o his_o book_n &_o his_o teacher_n both_o without_o any_o contradiction_n and_o then_o for_o your_o devotion_n it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o argument_n in_o the_o world_n that_o will_v ever_o reconcile_v i_o to_o they_o while_o i_o have_v that_o law_n in_o any_o prevail_a measure_n write_v in_o my_o heart_n that_o teach_v i_o to_o worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n what_o man_n of_o spiritual_a experience_n can_v choose_v but_o distaste_n your_o way_n of_o worship_n that_o do_v but_o read_v over_o one_o of_o your_o office_n and_o lady_n psalter_n and_o see_v the_o affect_a repetition_n of_o word_n and_o the_o ludicrous_a kind_n of_o devotion_n which_o you_o teach_v the_o people_n more_o like_a to_o charm_n then_o serious_a prayer_n to_o god_n especial_o if_o he_o also_o observe_v the_o huge_a number_n of_o ceremony_n which_o the_o very_a body_n of_o your_o worship_n be_v compose_v of_o as_o there_o be_v somewhat_o in_o nature_n that_o hinder_v a_o man_n from_o delight_v to_o eat_v chaff_n or_o feed_v upon_o mere_a air_n so_o be_v there_o somewhat_o in_o the_o new_a nature_n of_o a_o christian_a that_o be_v against_o this_o trifle_n and_o jest_n with_o god_n place_n another_o thing_n that_o have_v increase_v my_o distaste_n of_o your_o way_n be_v the_o common_a ungodliness_n of_o your_o follower_n i_o have_v endeavour_v as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o they_o where_o i_o come_v and_o i_o have_v know_v but_o very_o few_o of_o they_o but_o have_v be_v either_o whoremonger_n or_o swearer_n or_o drunkard_n or_o gamester_n or_o sensual_a liver_n nor_o do_v i_o ever_o meet_v with_o one_o to_o this_o day_n to_o my_o best_a remembrance_n that_o manifest_v a_o spiritual_a frame_n of_o heart_n or_o have_v any_o delight_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o sweet_a communication_n of_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n or_o can_v give_v any_o savoury_a account_n of_o any_o such_o spiritual_a work_n in_o they_o but_o all_o their_o religion_n be_v to_o stick_v to_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o go_v on_o in_o their_o ceremonious_a form_n of_o worship_n abstain_v from_o this_o meat_n or_o that_o and_o riot_v and_o pamper_v their_o flesh_n on_o holiday_n etc._n etc._n if_o i_o have_v know_v this_o to_o be_v the_o case_n only_o of_o the_o common_a people_n in_o italy_n or_o spain_n or_o france_n i_o shall_v not_o have_v wonder_v for_o i_o know_v that_o most_o of_o the_o people_n do_v take_v up_o their_o religion_n but_o upon_o carnal_a account_n and_o according_o will_n use_n it_o but_o to_o find_v it_o thus_o in_o england_n where_o your_o number_n be_v small_a and_o you_o pretend_v to_o hold_v your_o religion_n in_o so_o much_o self-denial_n the_o state_n be_v against_o you_o and_o therefore_o your_o party_n shall_v be_v the_o pure_a zealot_n and_o show_v the_o face_n of_o your_o doctrine_n in_o its_o great_a glory_n this_o make_v i_o judge_v of_o the_o tree_n by_o the_o fruit_n and_o the_o observe_n of_o this_o have_v make_v i_o admire_v that_o ever_o you_o can_v make_v the_o holiness_n of_o your_o church_n the_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a ostentation_n as_o you_o do_v yea_o that_o such_o man_n as_o h.p._n de_fw-fr cressy_n can_v have_v the_o face_n to_o pretend_v that_o your_o admirable_a holiness_n in_o comparison_n of_o we_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o you_o unhappy_a man_n with_o who_o do_v he_o converse_v while_o he_o seem_v a_o protestant_n or_o where_o do_v he_o live_v but_o this_o be_v not_o his_o fate_n alone_o but_o of_o divers_a of_o his_o strain_n when_o they_o be_v carnal_a protestant_n abhor_v the_o power_n of_o the_o religion_n which_o they_o profess_v and_o avoid_v and_o reproach_v the_o practiser_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n and_o so_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o nor_o experience_n of_o their_o holiness_n it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o leave_v they_o to_o so_o much_o blindness_n as_o to_o run_v from_o england_n to_o rome_n for_o holiness_n and_o that_o because_o they_o abhor_a purity_n they_o shall_v be_v so_o blind_v as_o not_o to_o discern_v the_o beauty_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o to_o dote_v on_o the_o name_n and_o coat_n of_o it_o which_o may_v be_v put_v on_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o off_o at_o night_n and_o indeed_o this_o have_v somewhat_o increase_v my_o averseness_n to_o observe_v that_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o godly_a and_o conscionable_a any_o be_v of_o our_o profession_n the_o more_o they_o be_v against_o you_o and_o that_o so_o few_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v turn_v to_o you_o that_o i_o yet_o know_v not_o certain_o of_o one_o that_o ever_o seem_v a_o godly_a person_n and_o the_o common_a ignorant_a sort_n of_o people_n that_o know_v not_o what_o a_o church_n be_v nor_o what_o religion_n be_v and_o that_o live_v in_o sensuality_n and_o wickedness_n be_v the_o favourabl_a to_o your_o way_n yea_o so_o forward_o to_o promote_v they_o that_o many_o of_o they_o will_v quick_o be_v you_o if_o the_o time_n be_v but_o change_v to_o you_o and_o these_o be_v the_o people_n that_o i_o have_v know_v become_v your_o proselyte_n when_o we_o have_v lose_v our_o labour_n upon_o they_o and_o leave_v they_o in_o their_o wickedness_n and_o they_o that_o be_v filthy_a be_v filthy_a still_o than_o some_o of_o they_o turn_v papist_n and_o this_o forsooth_o in_o admiration_n of_o the_o holiness_n of_o your_o church_n when_o i_o confess_v for_o some_o of_o they_o i_o have_v not_o be_v sorry_a to_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v turn_v to_o you_o for_o i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v the_o like_n they_o have_v to_o you_o may_v make_v they_o hearken_v more_o to_o your_o reproof_n then_o to_o we_o and_o possible_o you_o may_v persuade_v they_o from_o whoredom_n and_o drunkenness_n and_o swear_v and_o lie_v when_o we_o be_v out_o of_o hope_n but_o when_o i_o perceive_v that_o they_o flee_v to_o you_o for_o a_o indulgence_n in_o their_o sin_n because_o some_o of_o these_o be_v but_o venial_a sin_n with_o you_o and_o they_o have_v a_o palliate_v ceremonial_a cure_n at_o hand_n to_o befool_v they_o i_o then_o acknowledge_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n against_o they_o i_o be_o none_o of_o those_o that_o think_v that_o there_o be_v none_o among_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v i_o have_v read_v that_o in_o some_o of_o your_o writer_n that_o persuade_v i_o it_o come_v from_o a_o sanctify_a heart_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o acknowledge_v and_o honour_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n wherever_o i_o can_v discern_v it_o but_o i_o must_v profess_v that_o i_o be_v never_o yet_o so_o happy_a as_o to_o converse_v with_o a_o papist_n that_o manifest_v a_o experience_a gracious_a heavenly_a mind_n though_o i_o be_o true_o willing_a to_o make_v the_o best_a of_o they_o and_o that_o your_o church_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o sink_n or_o channel_n to_o receive_v the_o excrement_n and_o filth_n of_o we_o be_v no_o great_a argument_n of_o its_o holiness_n in_o my_o eye_n and_o if_o a_o few_o that_o be_v less_o sensual_a turn_n to_o you_o it_o be_v common_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v discern_v the_o tenant_n or_o servant_n of_o some_o of_o your_o way_n that_o be_v lead_v by_o worldly_a respect_n and_o they_o be_v such_o
it_o not_o for_o the_o will_n itself_o be_v under_o a_o law_n which_o put_v it_o upon_o duty_n and_o not_o only_o restrain_v it_o from_o sinful_a volition_n or_o nolition_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o will_v do_v but_o suspend_v its_o act_n in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n and_o thereby_o let_v the_o command_v faculty_n miscarry_v i_o shall_v yet_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v forbid_v and_o a_o proper_a sin_n what_o if_o you_o have_v a_o charge_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o your_o flock_n and_o you_o sleep_v while_o they_o be_v mislead_v or_o if_o you_o be_v a_o physician_n and_o have_v charge_n of_o your_o patient_n life_n and_o you_o fall_v asleep_a till_o they_o be_v past_a recovery_n be_v you_o no_o sinner_n and_o do_v you_o not_o go_v against_o the_o law_n yes_o you_o be_v a_o murderer_n for_o though_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o voluntary_a quoad_fw-la actum_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la it_o be_v moral_o or_o imputative_o voluntary_a propter_fw-la omissionem_fw-la actus_fw-la if_o wolverhampton_n papist_n be_v feed_v with_o such_o doctrine_n as_o this_o they_o may_v well_o be_v many_o but_o they_o be_v unlikely_a to_o be_v good_a inconsiderateness_n which_o i_o take_v for_o one_o of_o the_o most_o destroy_a sin_n it_o seem_v be_v a_o notable_a preservative_n from_o sin_n for_o be_v sure_a you_o deliberate_v not_o and_o you_o break_v no_o law_n of_o god_n what_o ever_o you_o do_v and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o lie_v except_o the_o lie_v of_o the_o high_a strain_n that_o be_v by_o h.t._n except_v no_o wonder_n then_o if_o papist_n be_v liar_n and_o can_v you_o think_v it_o any_o injury_n to_o you_o if_o from_o hence_o i_o interptet_fw-la not_o only_o many_o of_o your_o historical_a write_n such_o as_o the_o image_n of_o both_o church_n etc._n etc._n but_o also_o much_o of_o the_o jugging_n that_o be_v in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n if_o you_o put_v yourselves_o in_o the_o garb_n of_o quaker_n enthusiast_n anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n and_o pretend_v that_o you_o be_v of_o their_o opinion_n and_o deny_v yourselves_o to_o be_v what_o you_o be_v as_o long_o as_o you_o think_v that_o these_o lie_n be_v pious_a and_o rather_o honour_n god_n then_o great_o dishonour_v he_o and_o rather_o do_v good_a to_o other_o by_o promote_a the_o catholic_a cause_n then_o notable_o injure_v they_o can_v any_o man_n say_v that_o be_v of_o your_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o why_o call_v you_o that_o a_o venial_a sin_n which_o be_v against_o no_o law_n when_o sin_n be_v a_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o where_o there_o ●s_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n 1_o joh._n 3.4_o rom._n 4.15_o and_o why_o say_v you_o ●hat_n veniam_fw-la meretur_fw-la when_o yet_o you_o say_v that_o ●aenam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la non_fw-la meretur_fw-la how_o can_v there_o ●e_a venia_fw-la sine_fw-la merito_fw-la vel_fw-la debito_fw-la paenae_fw-la what_o ●eed_v you_o any_o pardon_n of_o that_o which_o be_v never_o ●eserved_v by_o you_o and_o what_o need_v you_o ask_v forgiveness_n of_o these_o sin_n or_o be_v behold_v to_o god_n ●or_a it_o if_o the_o punishment_n to_o be_v forgive_v be_v never_o due_a will_v you_o beg_v the_o remission_n of_o a_o debt_n which_o be_v no_o debt_n aquinas_n make_v venial_a and_o mortal_a sin_n to_o differ_v as_o reparabile_fw-la &_o irreparabile_fw-la because_o from_o a_o inward_a principle_n the_o one_o may_v be_v repair_v but_o the_o other_o not_o without_o infuse_a supernatural_a grace_n but_o be_v it_o ever_o the_o less_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v reparabile_fw-la nay_o what_o need_v it_o reparation_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o transgression_n but_o what_o be_v this_o reparation_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v it_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n no_o sure_o for_o eternal_a punishment_n he_o say_v it_o deserve_v not_o and_o internal_a principle_n do_v not_o sure_o forgive_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n can_v we_o forgive_v ourselves_o what_o be_v it_o then_o be_v it_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o blot_n no_o proper_o peccatum_fw-la veniale_a non_fw-la inducit_fw-la maculam_fw-la as_o before_o say_v be_v it_o that_o venial_a sin_n be_v easy_a conquer_v and_o forsake_v then_o mortal_a no_o sure_o for_o aquinas_n tell_v we_o that_o a_o man_n may_v live_v for_o a_o little_a while_n without_o venial_a sin_n but_o not_o long_o but_o without_o mortal_a sin_n infra_fw-la they_o may_v easy_o live_v till_o death_n what_o this_o reparation_n than_o be_v i_o do_v not_o certain_o know_v but_o whatever_o it_o be_v methinks_v it_o shall_v suppose_v a_o proper_a sin_n and_o not_o only_o analogical_a a_o a_o desert_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n to_o be_v remit_v and_o here_o i_o must_v add_v that_o another_o thin●_n that_o late_o have_v much_o disaffect_v i_o to_o you●_n profession_n be_v to_o see_v by_o what_o actual_a fraud_n and_o juggle_n it_o be_v propagate_v do_v you_o think_v i_o see_v not_o the_o game_n that_o you_o be_v now_o play_v in_o the_o dark_a in_o england_n in_o the_o person_n of_o seeker_n behmenist_n paracelsian_n origenist_n quaker_n and_o anabaptist_n i_o must_v confess_v i_o natural_o abhor_v collusion_n and_o dissimulation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n if_o your_o way_n be_v of_o god_n it_o need_v not_o such_o device_n to_o uphold_v it_o nor_o will_v it_o suit_v so_o well_o with_o work_n of_o darkness_n if_o you_o have_v the_o truth_n produce_v it_o naked_a and_o deal_v plain_o and_o play_v above_o board_n for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v not_o fear_v be_v cheat_v out_o of_o my_o religion_n by_o any_o thing_n but_o seem_a force_n of_o argument_n for_o i_o mean_v to_o know_v what_o i_o receive_v before_o i_o take_v it_o and_o to_o taste_v and_o chew_v it_o before_o i_o let_v it_o down_o but_o the_o blind_a incautelous_a multitude_n and_o half_a witted_a giddy_a person_n and_o discontent_a licentious_a half_a study_a gentleman_n may_v possible_o be_v catch_v by_o such_o chaff_n as_o this_o another_o of_o your_o dissimulation_n which_o increase_v my_o dissatisfaction_n be_v your_o pretend_v ●o_o the_o ignorant_a people_n that_o you_o be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n and_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o you_o ●nd_v make_v our_o division_n the_o great_a argument_n ●o_o raise_v ●n_n odium_fw-la against_o our_o doctrine_n call_v we_o schismatic_n heretic_n and_o the_o like_a when_o ●ndeed_o no_o one_o thing_n do_v so_o much_o turn_v away_o my_o heart_n from_o you_o as_o your_o abominable_a schism_n do_v we_o not_o know_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o opinion_n among_o you_o mention_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o of_o your_o writer_n if_o you_o call_v i_o out_o to_o any_o more_o of_o this_o work_n i_o mean_v the_o next_o time_n to_o present_a to_o the_o world_n a_o catalogue_n of_o your_o division_n among_o yourselves_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o notable_a your_o unity_n be_v if_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v what_o a_o silly_a sottish_a generation_n be_v your_o secular_a priest_n if_o your_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v what_o a_o seditious_a hypocritical_a cheat_v pack_n be_v the_o jesuit_n i_o speak_v not_o the_o word_n of_o your_o protestant_a adversary_n but_o of_o those_o of_o your_o own_o church_n do_v i_o not_o know_v what_o guiliel_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it amore_fw-la and_o many_o another_o say_v of_o your_o own_o church_n do_v you_o think_v i_o never_o read_v watson_n quodlibet_n and_o the_o many_o pretty_a story_n of_o the_o jesuit_n exploit_n there_o mention_v by_o he_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o you_o suffer_v many_o of_o your_o own_o follower_n to_o read_v these_o book_n that_o be_v write_v against_o one_o another_o by_o yourselves_o but_o the_o great_a division_n among_o you_o that_o quite_o overthrow_v your_o cause_n in_o my_o esteem_n be_v that_o between_o the_o french_a and_o italian_a in_o your_o very_a foundation_n which_o all_o your_o faith_n be_v resolve_v into_o you_o have_v no_o belief_n of_o scripture_n nor_o in_o christ_n no_o hope_n of_o heaven_n you_o differ_v not_o from_o turk_n and_o infidel_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o your_o church_n and_o this_o church_n mus●_n be_v infallible_a or_o else_o your_o faith_n be_v fallible_a a●_n lest_o it_o must_v be_v of_o sovereign_a authority_n and_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o upshot_n you_o be_v not_o agree●_n what_o this_o church_n be_v one_o say_v it_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o general_n council_n and_o another_o say_v it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n dissent_n one_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a and_o the_o other_o say_v a_o council_n be_v fallible_a one_o say_v a_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n and_o another_o say_v the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o now_o what_o be_v become_v of_o your_o religion_n nay_o be_v it_o not_o
christ_n jesus_n and_o their_o religion_n teach_v and_o engage_v they_o so_o to_o walk_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o do_v so_o and_o they_o may_v with_o the_o same_o apostle_n rom._n 8.33_o 34._o challenge_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v god_n that_o justify_v who_o shall_v condemn_v we_o paul_n tell_v timothy_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v he_o wise_a to_o salvation_n 2_o tim._n 3.15_o therefore_o they_o may_v make_v we_o also_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o he_o add_v that_o all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o correction_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n vers_fw-la 16_o 17._o it_o be_v endless_a to_o recite_v all_o that_o prove_v the_o salvation_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o this_o all_o true_a protestant_n do_v i_o shall_v therefore_o leave_v this_o task_n and_o next_o hear_v what_o the_o papist_n can_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o what_o they_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n obj._n 1_o there_o be_v but_o one_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v not_o that_o one_o way_n therefore_o not_o a_o safe_a way_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v thus_o that_o religion_n which_o the_o church_n have_v own_v from_o the_o apostle_n day_n till_o now_o be_v that_o one_o way_n the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o church_n have_v so_o own_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o that_o one_o religion_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o part_n 1._o as_o to_o doctrine_n 2._o as_o to_o discipline_n 3._o as_o to_o worship_v 1._o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n have_v maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o 1._o freewill_n to_o good_a or_o evil_n 2._o of_o predestination_n upon_o foresee_a faith_n 3._o of_o man_n merit_n 4._o of_o justification_n by_o inherent_a grace_n 5._o against_o the_o certain_a perseverance_n of_o all_o the_o justify_v and_o consequent_o against_o their_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n 6._o vow_a chastity_n and_o monastical_a life_n in_o discipline_n the_o church_n ever_o hold_v 1._o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o universal_a jurisdiction_n 2._o the_o government_n by_o bishop_n over_o presbyter_n 3._o ordination_n by_o they_o and_o not_o without_o they_o 4._o pennance_n and_o confession_n of_o sin_n 3._o in_o matter_n of_o worship_n the_o church_n have_v still_o use_v 1._o chrism_n to_o the_o baptise_a 2._o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o confirmation_n 3._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n 4._o the_o cross_n 5._o holy_a day_n 6._o fast_v day_n all_o which_o the_o protestant_n have_v cast_v off_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n answ_n 1._o to_o the_o major_a proposition_n of_o the_o main_a argument_n i_o answer_v the_o word_n safe_a refer_v too_o some_o danger_n that_o we_o be_v safe_a from_o the_o way_n may_v be_v call_v safe_a therefore_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o sin_n or_o damnation_n also_o this_o way_n may_v be_v call_v one_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o essential_o of_o religion_n or_o else_o in_o respect_n of_o some_o inferior_a truth_n and_o duty_n that_o be_v not_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o so_o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o religion_n as_o to_o the_o essential_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n in_o which_o a_o man_n can_v be_v safe_a from_o damnation_n and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o religion_n as_o comprehend_v all_o the_o integral_a part_n in_o which_o a_o man_n can_v be_v safe_a from_o sin_n but_o yet_o that_o religion_n which_o in_o the_o essential_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n be_v but_o one_o may_v yet_o consist_v with_o error_n in_o low_a and_o lesser_a thing_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o that_o hold_v it_o and_o yet_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n though_o not_o so_o safe_a as_o to_o freeman_n from_o all_o sin_n and_o consequent_o there_o may_v be_v difference_n among_o true_a christian_n that_o shall_v be_v save_v though_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o perfect_a harmony_n in_o the_o entire_a doctrine_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o deliver_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n because_o no_o man_n hold_v that_o doctrine_n entire_o and_o perfect_o without_o any_o error_n or_o ignorance_n and_o therefore_o there_o will_v be_v much_o difference_n among_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o the_o major_a of_o the_o prosyllogisme_n i_o answer_v implicit_o and_o in_o general_n the_o church_n have_v own_v the_o perfect_a truth_n in_o all_o age_n because_o it_o have_v believe_v that_o all_o that_o god_n say_v be_v true_a and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n but_o explicit_o and_o particular_o the_o church_n have_v not_o hold_v all_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n in_o any_o one_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n for_o every_o man_n on_o earth_n have_v be_v ignorant_a and_o the_o most_o know_a man_n erroneous_a in_o some_o thing_n see_v we_o be_v all_o imperfect_a and_o here_o know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o so_o one_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v in_o one_o thing_n and_o another_o in_o another_o thing_n as_o the_o difference_n about_o easter_n rebaptise_v the_o millennium_n infant_n communicate_v etc._n etc._n show_v they_o do_v and_o of_o the_o same_o church_n one_o member_n may_v err_v in_o one_o thing_n and_o another_o in_o another_o thing_n it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o no_o two_o man_n on_o the_o earth_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o mind_n as_o that_o none_o on_o earth_n be_v perfect_a in_o knowledge_n to_o the_o minor_a i_o answer_v that_o the_o religion_n call_v protestant_n be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o the_o church_n have_v still_o own_v and_o in_o other_o inferior_a point_n the_o church_n have_v not_o be_v all_o or_o always_o of_o one_o mind_n some_o age_n be_v more_o pure_a and_o other_o more_o corrupt_a the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v near_a to_o that_o of_o the_o pure_a time_n than_o the_o papist_n be_v it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o essential_o it_o be_v the_o near_a it_o in_o the_o integral_n it_o be_v more_o remote_a from_o latter_a corruption_n introduce_v in_o time_n more_o remote_a from_o the_o apostolical_a purity_n to_o the_o particular_a instance_n of_o our_o difference_n from_o the_o former_a church_n i_o answer_v particular_o 1._o for_o free_a will_n to_o god_n if_o you_o mean_v a_o natural_a freedom_n which_o be_v the_o will_n self-determining_a power_n so_o the_o protestant_n maintain_v it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n if_o you_o mean_v a_o moral_a freedom_n from_o ill-inclining_a habit_n which_o be_v proper_o a_o right-disposition_n so_o the_o father_n maintain_v it_o not_o obj._n let_v scultetus_n in_o medulla_n patru●_fw-la and_o other_o of_o your_o own_o writer_n be_v judge_v who_o still_o number_n this_o inter_fw-la naevos_fw-la patrum_fw-la answ_n scultetus_n and_o calvin_n and_o other_o may_v mistake_v the_o father_n sense_n and_o think_v that_o they_o speak_v of_o moral_a freedom_n when_o they_o speak_v but_o of_o natural_a which_o be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o will_n and_o its_o like_a that_o they_o do_v so_o see_v the_o father_n maintain_v original_a sin_n which_o be_v that_o pravity_n of_o humane_a nature_n which_o be_v clean_o contrary_a to_o moral_v freewill_n 2._o and_o if_o the_o father_n be_v for_o a_o freewill_n in_o a_o moral-ethical_a sense_n so_o be_v one_o part_n of_o the_o protestant_n as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v and_o if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n so_o be_v those_o protestant_n if_o in_o the_o wrong_n then_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v in_o this_o in_o the_o right_n 3._o this_o be_v a_o point_n that_o man_n may_v differ_v in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o father_n do_v from_o we_o and_o yet_o be_v in_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n 4._o the_o dominican_n and_o the_o jesuit_n differ_v about_o it_o as_o much_o as_o we_o and_o the_o father_n yea_o they_o can_v yet_o agree_v what_o natural_a freewill_n be_v 2._o for_o predestination_n upon_o foresee_a faith_n faith_n 1._o there_o be_v no_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n mind_n in_o those_o time_n about_o it_o but_o what_o be_v find_v in_o the_o wrigting_n of_o particular_a doctor_n 2._o we_o confess_v that_o man_n be_v elect_v to_o glory_n and_o justification_n from_o guilt_n upon_o foresee_a faith_n but_o we_o say_v withal_o that_o they_o be_v elect_v to_o that_o faith_n and_o that_o god_n do_v foresee_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o give_v and_o not_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o corrupt_v unregenerate_a
and_o so_o to_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o this_o cup_n alas_o they_o know_v all_o this_o they_o can_v but_o know_v it_o and_o yet_o they_o will_v contradict_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n god_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o and_o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o drink_v the_o pope_n say_v let_v none_o of_o the_o people_n drink_v of_o it_o but_o the_o clergy_n only_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o abrogate_v god_n law_n and_o set_v up_o the_o pope_n above_o and_o against_o it_o yea_o unless_o it_o be_v to_o show_v the_o world_n their_o power_n to_o contradict_v christ_n and_o destroy_v his_o word_n who_o can_v imagine_v what_o shall_v move_v they_o to_o this_o attempt_n if_o there_o be_v any_o temptation_n of_o profit_n or_o honour_n in_o the_o business_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o mainta_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n purgatory_n indulgence_n pardon_n etc._n etc._n we_o shall_v not_o wonder_v at_o it_o but_o what_o profit_n or_o honour_n or_o pleasure_n be_v it_o thus_o to_o contradict_v christ_n and_o for_o they_o that_o add_v such_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o own_o ceremony_n to_o affect_v so_o to_o cut_v off_o one_o half_a of_o the_o sacramental_a rite_n and_o matter_n which_o christ_n ordain_v nay_o three_o do_v not_o these_o man_n know_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n be_v both_o give_v to_o the_o people_n by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o it_o so_o continue_a for_o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o that_o their_o alteration_n be_v a_o mere_a novelty_n yes_o they_o know_v all_o this_o for_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o far_o past_a doubt_n that_o they_o can_v but_o know_v it_o and_o yet_o these_o deceiver_n will_v make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o old_a religion_n and_o our_o region_n be_v new_a these_o be_v they_o that_o cry_v out_o against_o our_o cast_n off_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o the_o church_n constitution_n and_o custom_n and_o go_v in_o new_a way_n which_o our_o forefather_n know_v not_o these_o be_v they_o that_o make_v it_o a_o mark_n of_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v receive_v it_o and_o that_o as_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o these_o man_n dare_v cast_v off_o not_o only_o that_o which_o they_o know_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n receive_v and_o practise_v as_o from_o the_o apostle_n as_o justin_n martyr_n tertullian_n and_o all_o antiquity_n profess_v but_o also_o be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n with_o what_o face_n can_v these_o that_o exclaim_v against_o novelty_n introduce_v such_o a_o palpable_a novelty_n into_o the_o church_n with_o what_o face_n can_v they_o that_o so_o cry_v up_o antiquity_n gainsay_v all_o antiqiuty_n and_o they_o that_o cry_v up_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_n so_o go_v against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o so_o many_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n they_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o this_o part_n of_o popery_n be_v utter_o new_a against_o the_o constant_a practice_n and_o canon_n of_o all_o church_n the_o three_o point_n which_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o be_v their_o perform_a god_n public_a service_n in_o latin_a and_o forbid_v the_o people_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o know_a vulgar_a tongue_n when_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n have_v write_v the_o great_a part_n of_o a_o whole_a chapter_n 1_o cor._n 14._o express_o against_o this_o opinion_n and_o practice_n and_o for_o use_v of_o a_o know_a tongue_n that_o other_o may_v understand_v and_o be_v edify_v the_o evasion_n by_o which_o they_o will_v elude_v that_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o senseless_a that_o i_o think_v it_o not_o necessary_a to_o recite_v they_o but_o rather_o suppose_v that_o they_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n than_o the_o bare_a considerate_a read_n of_o the_o text_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v venture_v the_o reader_n if_o he_o have_v common_a capacity_n and_o impartiality_n and_o be_v but_o willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n upon_o any_o thing_n that_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o say_v for_o their_o latin_a service_n and_o lock_v up_o the_o scripture_n so_o be_v it_o he_o will_v but_o read_v that_o chapter_n considerate_o and_o be_v not_o these_o good_a teacher_n in_o christ_n school_n that_o will_v lock_v up_o the_o grammar_n from_o their_o scholar_n when_o it_o be_v the_o very_a office_n of_o the_o presbyter_n to_o teach_v it_o the_o people_n and_o to_o hide_v from_o they_o that_o word_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o he_o have_v give_v the_o world_n to_o be_v their_o directory_n to_o salvation_n the_o prophet_n and_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v and_o write_v this_o word_n in_o a_o know●_n tongue_n to_o the_o people_n to_o who_o they_o do_v immediate_o direct_v it_o and_o must_v all_o hear_v and_o read_v it_o then_o and_o only_o the_o learned_a now_o be_v not_o these_o the_o man_n that_o take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o will_v neither_o enter_v in_o themselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v they_o do_v express_o contradict_v the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o bid_v the_o people_n not_o read_v the_o scripture_n when_o god_n have_v charge_v they_o to_o write_v it_o on_o the_o very_a post_n of_o their_o house_n and_o on_o their_o door_n and_o that_o it_o be_v as_o a_o frontlet_n between_o their_o eye_n and_o that_o they_o teach_v it_o their_o child_n speak_v of_o it_o lie_v down_o and_o rise_v up_o at_o home_o and_o abroad_o deut._n 6_o &_o 11._o god_n make_v it_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o bless_a man_n psal_n 1.2_o 3._o to_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n in_o his_o law_n as_o make_v it_o his_o delight_n and_o the_o papist_n common_o maintain_v in_o their_o write_n that_o to_o have_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o heresy_n god_n make_v the_o study_n of_o his_o word_n the_o duty_n and_o mark_n of_o all_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o papist_n make_v it_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n and_o have_v burn_v many_o a_o one_o for_o it_o here_o in_o queen_n mary_n day_n and_o torment_a and_o burn_v many_o by_o their_o bloody_a inquisition_n for_o it_o abroad_o the_o very_a pharisee_n think_v that_o their_o vulgar_a be_v curse_v that_o know_v not_o the_o law_n and_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o let_v it_o be_v make_v know_v to_o they_o lest_o it_o make_v they_o accurse_v god_n say_v to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o isa_n 8.20_o the_o papist_n cry_v out_o precul_fw-la hinc_fw-la away_o let_v it_o alone_o meddle_v not_o with_o it_o it_o will_v make_v you_o heretic_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v have_v large_a experience_n that_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n and_o contradict_v their_o impiety_n be_v most_o effectual_o promote_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o think_v they_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o speak_v against_o it_o saint_n john_n say_v these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n throagh_fw-mi his_o name_n joh._n 20.31_o the_o papist_n say_v read_v not_o these_o holy_a write_n lest_o they_o destroy_v your_o faith_n and_o bring_v you_o to_o damnation_n when_o the_o man_n luk._n 10.26_o ask_v christ_n what_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n christ_n answer_v he_o thus_o what_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n how_o read_v thou_o direct_v to_o the_o course_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v forbid_v the_o apostle_n say_v that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v aforetime_o be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n rom._n 15.4_o but_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o have_v man_n learn_v that_o which_o be_v write_v for_o their_o learning_n comfort_n and_o hope_n joh●_n write_v to_o father_n young_a man_n and_o child_n 1_o john_n 2.12_o 13_o 14._o god_n anger_n against_o the_o jew_n be_v that_o he_o have_v write_v to_o they_o the_o great_a or_o wonderful_a thing_n of_o his_o law_n and_o they_o have_v account_v they_o as_o strange_a thing_n hos_n 8.12_o and_o the_o papist_n will_v force_v people_n to_o be_v strange_a to_o these_o write_n yet_o how_o familiar_a comparative_o they_o be_v to_o the_o vulgar_a jew_n and_o their_o very_a child_n ●s_v know_v and_o acknowledge_v be_v it_o not_o a_o high_a advancement_n of_o the_o gospel_n church_n above_o the_o legal_a jewish_a church_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v vouchsafe_v it_o that_o we_o may_v not_o have_v the_o same_o liberty_n or_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n as_o the_o very_a child_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v their_o child_n must_v be_v teach_v
the_o scripture_n lie_v down_o and_o rise_v up_o and_o our_o elder_a people_n even_o to_o the_o least_o breath_n must_v not_o read_v they_o unless_o they_o can_v learn_v the_o tongue_n which_o they_o be_v first_o write_v in_o the_o jew_n have_v the_o septuagint_n translation_n or_o that_o so_o call_v when_o the_o hebrew_n grow_v strange_a to_o they_o which_o the_o apostle_n use_v in_o their_o ordinary_a citation_n and_o they_o hear_v the_o gospel_n preach_v in_o the_o syriack_n which_o be_v then_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n but_o we_o may_v not_o read_v the_o same_o in_o our_o vulgar_a tongue_n by_o the_o papist_n consent_n moses_n joshua_n josiah_n nehemiah_n read_v the_o scripture_n to_o all_o the_o people_n exod_a 24.7_o josh_n 8.34_o 35._o 2_o king_n 23.1_o 2_o 3._o neh._n 8.3.8.18_o &_o 9_o 3_o &_o 13.1_o and_o it_o be_v their_o custom_n to_o read_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o people_n every_o sabbath_n day_n act._n 13.27_o &_o 15.21_o 2_o cor._n 3.15_o luk_n 4.16_o and_o christ_n use_v to_o reprehend_v their_o strangeness_n to_o scripture_n passage_n as_o if_o they_o have_v not_o read_v they_o with_o such_o word_n as_o these_o have_v you_o not_o read_v &_o c_o and_o have_v you_o never_o read_v &_o c_o mat_n 12.3.5_o &_o 19.4_o &_o 21.26_o &_o 22.21_o mark_v 12.10.26_o luk_n 6.3_o luk._n 10.26_o and_o moses_n command_v israel_n the_o priest_n levite_n and_o all_o the_o elder_n thus_o deut._n 31.11_o 12_o 13._o when_o all_o israel_n be_v come_v to_o appear_v before_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o the_o place_n which_o he_o shall_v choose_v thou_o shall_v read_v this_o law_n before_o all_o israel_n in_o their_o hear_n gather_v the_o people_n together_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o child_n and_o the_o strange_a that_o be_v within_o thy_o gate_n that_o they_o may_v hear_v and_o that_o they_o may_v learn_v and_o fear_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n and_o observe_v to_o do_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n and_o tha●_n their_o child_n which_o have_v not_o know_v any_o thing_n may_v hear_v and_o learn_v to_o fear_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n as_o long_a a●_n you_o live_v in_o the_o land_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v therefore_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n that_o it_o must_v be_v read_v and_o when_o the_o people_n understand_v not_o the_o old_a hebrew_n tongue_n in_o which_o the_o law_n be_v write_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o change_n of_o their_o speech_n in_o the_o captivity_n nehemiah_n cause_v they_o to_o understand_v the_o read_n neh._n 8.8_o no_o doubt_n by_o express_v it_o in_o the_o language_n which_o they_o understand_v and_o yet_o the_o papist_n forb●d_v the_o unlearned_a that_o have_v most_o need_v of_o teach_n the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o make_v it_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o heresy_n how_o impious_o against_o god_n and_o how_o cruel_o against_o man_n be_v this_o commit_v must_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n send_v down_o his_o spirit_n to_o dictate_v a_o illuminate_a doctrine_n to_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n for_o the_o world_n must_v he_o give_v they_o a_o perfect_a law_n by_o which_o truth_n and_o heresy_n must_v be_v discern_v must_v he_o send_v his_o own_o son_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o cause_v his_o instrument_n to_o write_v it_o in_o a_o language_n best_o know_v to_o those_o that_o they_o converse_v with_o or_o to_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o be_v convert_v by_o it_o and_o must_v this_o doctrine_n now_o be_v make_v the_o mother_n of_o heresy_n and_o keep_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n that_o shall_v learn_v it_o what_o must_v the_o only_a rule_n that_o condemn_v heresy_n be_v make_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o must_v the_o light_n which_o god_n have_v give_v the_o world_n be_v blame_v for_o all_o the_o darkness_n of_o man_n error_n or_o must_v man_n be_v keep_v from_o the_o light_n for_o fear_v lest_o it_o lead_v they_o into_o darkness_n this_o be_v the_o popish_a piety_n and_o charity_n in_o stead_n of_o help_v to_o illuminate_v the_o dark_a world_n as_o all_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v do_v act._n 26.17_o 10._o they_o ●ust_z have_v all_o the_o unlearned_a to_o put_v out_o their_o eye_n ●d_a be_v lead_v by_o their_o guide_n and_o trust_v their_o soul_n with_o they_o for_o fear_v lest_o if_o they_o have_v any_o eye_n in_o their_o head_n and_o any_o light_n to_o walk_v by_o they_o shall_v stumble_v or_o err_v through_o the_o imperfection_n of_o their_o sight_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n who_o so_o much_o pretend_v to_o unity_n be_v various_a and_o changeable_a in_o this_o high_a point_n of_o their_o abomination_n as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o thing_n for_o when_o they_o once_o see_v that_o they_o can_v keep_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o people_n because_o the_o protestant_n translation_n be_v among_o they_o than_o they_o will_v permit_v they_o to_o read_v their_o own_o translation_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n the_o rhemist_n translate_v the_o new_a testament_n into_o english_a when_o they_o see_v they_o can_v not_o whole_o suppress_v and_o hide_v that_o light_n and_o on_o this_o account_v it_o be_v that_o our_o papist_n in_o england_n and_o some_o other_o part_n where_o the_o protestant_n abound_v among_o they_o be_v permit_v by_o their_o priest_n with_o some_o warning_n of_o the_o needlessness_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o it_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o country_n tongue_n when_o as_o to_o a_o papist_n in_o spain_n or_o italy_n it_o be_v no_o less_o a_o crime_n then_o to_o merit_v the_o rack_n or_o strappado_n of_o the_o inquisition_n and_o its_o strange_a if_o they_o be_v not_o burn_v for_o it_o at_o a_o stake_n so_o that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o some_o seduce_a papist_n in_o england_n so_o ignorant_a of_o their_o course_n abroad_o and_o so_o gull_v by_o the_o lie_v of_o their_o companion_n or_o priest_n that_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o do_v any_o where_o forbid_v the_o vulgar_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n but_o be_v confident_o persuade_v that_o it_o be_v our_o slander_n of_o they_o so_o that_o these_o poor_a people_n believe_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v not_o set_v in_o spain_n at_o midnight_n because_o it_o shine_v at_o noon_n in_o england_n let_v they_o read_v but_o joh._n arboreus_n theosoph_n l._n 8._o c._n 9_o andradius_fw-la defens_n council_n trident._n l._n 4._o petrus_n lizetus_n dialog_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la libris_fw-la in_o vulg_n floq_fw-la non_fw-la evertendis_fw-la hosius_n dialog_n de_fw-fr communion_n etc._n etc._n petrus_n suitor_n de_fw-fr translatione_fw-la bibliae_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 15._o &_o 16._o salmeron_n in_o 1_o cor._n disp_n 30._o bellarmine_n himself_o mention_v the_o index_n librorum_fw-la prohibit_v of_o pope_n pius_n 4._o reg._n 4._o which_o forbid_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n except_o only_o to_o those_o that_o the_o ordinary_a shall_v think_v will_v receive_v good_a and_o not_o harm_n by_o it_o and_o so_o shall_v have_v a_o licence_n from_o he_o in_o writing_n and_o they_o pronounce_v that_o the_o common_a permission_n of_o the_o scripture_n thus_o do_v more_o harm_n then_o good_a the_o same_o index_n be_v after_o increase_v and_o approve_v by_o pope_n sixtus_n 5._o and_o clemens_n 8._o and_o how_o few_o they_o be_v that_o their_o ordinary_n will_v grant_v licence_n to_o for_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n be_v too_o well_o know_v by_o common_a experience_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n forbid_v all_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o alphonsus_n a_o castro_n commend_v they_o for_o it_o and_o many_o a_o one_o have_v be_v burn_v to_o ash_n for_o sell_v keep_v or_o read_v such_o bibles_n in_o spain_n italy_n and_o savoy_n and_o bellarmine_n mention_v the_o sess_z 22._o cap._n 8_o and_o can._n 9_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n forbid_v both_o the_o common_a read_n of_o such_o bibles_n and_o also_o the_o public_a use_n of_o they_o in_o the_o church_n in_o both_o which_o we_o must_v have_v they_o only_o in_o hebrew_a greek_a and_o latin_a bellarm._n ubi_fw-la supr_n if_o these_o be_v not_o notorious_a enemy_n of_o the_o light_n who_o be_v david_n faith_n psal_n 119._o that_o the_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n to_o his_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n to_o his_o path_n isaiah_n send_v we_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n say_v that_o if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o these_o it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o isa_n 8.20_o and_o the_o phpists_n say_v as_o arboreus_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la that_o the_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v the_o rise_n or_o root_n of_o all_o heresy_n and_o so_o the_o sun_n must_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o firmament_n as_o
that_o christ_n body_n admit_v of_o augmentation_n and_o either_o daily_a or_o weekly_o receive_v new_o make_v part_n or_o else_o that_o he_o have_v new_a body_n make_v daily_o 15._o also_o it_o follow_v that_o a_o creature_n either_o the_o baker_n or_o the_o priest_n may_v make_v god_n or_o make_v his_o saviour_n at_o least_o instrumental_o which_o be_v a_o horrid_a imagination_n 16._o it_o follow_v that_o either_o christ_n body_n have_v the_o accident_n of_o colour_n taste_n dimension_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v there_o sensible_a or_o else_o that_o those_o accident_n have_v no_o subject_n which_o be_v a_o contradiction_n 17._o it_o follow_v also_o that_o christ_n have_v not_o indeed_o a_o true_a humane_a body_n if_o it_o be_v such_o as_o be_v before_o employ_v 18._o and_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v part_n of_o it_o condemn_v hate_a of_o god_n and_o torment_v by_o the_o devil_n because_o his_o body_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o many_o million_o of_o wicked_a man_n which_o must_v be_v so_o condemn_v hate_a and_o torment_v 19_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o true_a which_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o heaven_n must_v receive_v he_o in_o that_o humane_a nature_n which_o ascend_v from_o earth_n till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n act._n 3.21_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v again_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n 20._o last_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o man_n must_v not_o trust_v his_o sense_n that_o though_o my_o eye_n my_o smell_n my_o taste_n my_o feel_n tell_v i_o that_o this_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o they_o be_v all_o deceive_v and_o not_o i_o only_o but_o all_o the_o sense_n in_o the_o world_n to_o which_o they_o be_v object_v and_o if_o that_o be_v true_a 1._o what_o reason_n have_v i_o to_o trust_v any_o papist_n living_n for_o all_o my_o good_a opinion_n of_o he_o must_v be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o something_o that_o i_o see_v or_o hear_v of_o he_o and_o it_o seem_v i_o be_o uncertain_a whether_o i_o see_v or_o hear_v he_o indeed_o or_o not_o 2._o and_o then_o how_o can_v i_o tell_v that_o i_o or_o any_o man_n be_v sure_a of_o any_o thing_n for_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o million_o in_o perfect_a health_n may_v be_v all_o deceive_v in_o this_o why_o not_o in_o other_o thing_n for_o aught_o we_o know_v 3._o and_o then_o how_o can_v any_o papist_n tell_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o christ_n body_n if_o he_o say_v because_o the_o church_n or_o the_o scripture_n say_v so_o how_o know_v he_o that_o but_o by_o hear_v or_o see_v and_o therefore_o for_o aught_o he_o know_v his_o sense_n may_v be_v deceive_v when_o he_o think_v he_o hear_v or_o read_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o well_o as_o when_o he_o think_v that_o he_o see_v feel_v smell_v and_o taste_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o be_v there_o not_o need_v of_o very_o strange_o cogent_a evidence_n now_o to_o impel_v they_o to_o believe_v against_o the_o concurrent_a vote_n of_o scripture_n sense_n and_o reason_n and_o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o contrary_a belief_n not_o the_o ancient_a church_n unless_o they_o wilful_o or_o negligent_o deceive_v themselves_o for_o the_o stream_n of_o antiquity_n be_v full_a against_o they_o so_o full_a that_o its_o hard_a to_o believe_v that_o any_o of_o they_o that_o be_v verse_v in_o antiquity_n can_v true_o think_v that_o antiquity_n be_v for_o they_o if_o they_o have_v but_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o man_n to_o understand_v what_o they_o read_v what_o be_v it_o then_o that_o bring_v they_o to_o this_o belief_n be_v it_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v not_o likely_a because_o they_o make_v so_o light_a of_o it_o and_o swear_v to_o take_v it_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n or_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o which_o last_o they_o be_v here_o and_o oft_o most_o desperate_o forswear_v it_o must_v be_v then_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n that_o they_o entertain_v this_o hard_a belief_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n believe_v it_o because_o they_o say_v it_o themselves_o and_o the_o rest_n believe_v it_o because_o the_o pope_n say_v it_o and_o be_v it_o true_o possible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v have_v so_o good_a a_o conceit_n of_o himself_o yea_o or_o any_o other_o think_v so_o well_o of_o he_o as_o to_o believe_v unfeigned_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n upon_o so_o weak_a a_o ground_n can_v the_o pope_n therefore_o believe_v it_o because_o he_o do_v believe_v it_o or_o be_v it_o not_o too_o probable_a that_o thousand_o of_o they_o be_v of_o that_o belief_n which_o melancthon_n sometime_o tell_v they_o of_o very_o smart_o you_o italian_n say_v he_o believe_v christ_n be_v in_o the_o bread_n before_o you_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o christ_n in_o heaven_n while_n they_o pretend_v to_o a_o faith_n above_o man_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v impossibility_n upon_o the_o pope_n credit_n i_o wish_v they_o prove_v to_o have_v the_o common_a belief_n of_o christian_n and_o that_o in_o heart_n they_o do_v not_o as_o once_o one_o of_o their_o pope_n do_v account_v the_o gospel_n but_o a_o commodious_a fable_n but_o let_v we_o suppose_v that_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o strange_a belief_n and_o that_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v the_o very_a word_n that_o do_v convince_v they_o as_o some_o of_o they_o do_v pretend_v i_o will_v here_o be_v bold_a to_o ask_v they_o that_o say_v so_o a_o question_n or_o two_o 1._o what_o if_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v intecprete_v this_o text_n as_o we_o do_v against_o your_o transubstantiation_n will_v you_o then_o have_v believe_v it_o upon_o the_o bare_a authority_n of_o this_o text_n what_o need_v i_o ask_v this_o your_o own_o oath_n and_o profession_n say_v no_o it_o be_v not_o then_o any_o evidence_n in_o this_o text_n that_o compel_v your_o belief_n and_o let_v i_o add_v that_o if_o i_o prove_v not_o in_o a_o fair_a debate_n upon_o a_o just_a call_n that_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v against_o transubstantiation_n i_o will_v give_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o england_n leave_v to_o spit_v in_o my_o face_n for_o all_o the_o high_a expression_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o some_o father_n have_v 2._o what_o be_v there_o in_o those_o word_n this_n be_v my_o body_n that_o can_v persuade_v any_o sober_a christian_a to_o their_o strange_a belief_n what_o be_v it_o because_o that_o they_o be_v proper_o and_o not_o figurative_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o how_o be_v that_o prove_v be_v it_o because_o we_o must_v not_o force_v the_o scripture_n but_o take_v it_o in_o the_o plain_a obvious_a sense_n i_o easy_o grant_v it_o but_o who_o know_v not_o that_o both_o in_o scripture_n and_o in_o all_o our_o common_a speech_n the_o figurative_a sense_n be_v oft_o the_o most_o plain_a and_o obvious_a and_o the_o literal_a the_o most_o improbable_a what_o three_o sentence_n do_v we_o use_v to_o speak_v together_o without_o some_o figurative_a expression_n i_o will_v appeal_v to_o any_o unprejudiced_a man_n of_o reason_n whether_o a_o christian_a that_o shall_v new_o read_v those_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v never_o hear_v they_o or_o read_v they_o before_o will_v not_o soon_o take_v they_o in_o our_o sense_n then_o in_o the_o papist_n they_o may_v easy_o try_v this_o upon_o a_o new_a convert_n if_o they_o please_v and_o i_o dare_v make_v their_o own_o conscience_n judge_v if_o they_o have_v any_o leave_v to_o befriend_v a_o common_a truth_n what_o be_v there_o more_o in_o this_n be_v my_o body_n be_v a_o sacramental_a business_n then_o for_o a_o man_n that_o be_v in_o a_o room_n among_o many_o image_n to_o say_v this_n be_v peter_n or_o paul_n or_o this_o be_v augustine_n or_o hierom_n or_o chrysostome_n and_o will_v not_o any_o unprejudiced_a slander_n by_o suppose_n that_o the_o most_o obvious_a sense_n of_o those_o word_n be_v this_o be_v the_o picture_n of_o peter_n paul_n &_o c._n or_o will_v a_o man_n easy_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o speaker_n that_o this_o picture_n be_v the_o very_a real_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o all_o other_o picture_n that_o ever_o shall_v be_v make_v after_o the_o same_o exemplar_n shall_v be_v so_o transubstantiate_v so_o what_o be_v the_o obvious_a signification_n of_o those_o word_n this_n be_v my_o body_n but_o this_n be_v the_o sacrament_n or_o representation_n of_o my_o body_n especial_o when_o his_o real_a body_n be_v distinct_o there_o present_a and_o he_o express_o bid_v they_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o
supplication_n and_o holiness_n within_o he_o and_o have_v know_v by_o experience_n what_o it_o be_v to_o walk_v with_o god_n and_o offer_v he_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o token_n of_o his_o acceptance_n and_o approbation_n arg._n 11._o if_o popery_n be_v maintain_v common_o by_o most_o wicked_a and_o abominable_a mean_n and_o so_o by_o the_o devil_n than_o it_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v too_o true_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n i_o speak_v not_o here_o of_o the_o mere_a miscarriage_n of_o some_o of_o their_o party_n but_o of_o the_o pillar_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n be_v support_v which_o that_o it_o be_v by_o abominable_a wickedness_n i_o shal●_n give_v you_o but_o these_o few_o instance_n follow_v 1._o the_o very_a business_n or_o prize_n which_o they_o so_o much_o contend_v for_o be_v pomp_n greatness_n dominion_n yea_o tyranny_n in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_o pride_n vainglory_n and_o covetousness_n that_o set_v they_o on_o and_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o their_o contest_v what_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o quarrel_n but_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n of_o one_o city_n even_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o ruler_n and_o master_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o all_o prince_n and_o people_n obey_v they_o what_o unprejudiced_a man_n can_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o this_o contest_v be_v tyrannical_a and_o that_o their_o dominion_n be_v their_o religion_n and_o their_o pride_n be_v their_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o question_n be_v but_o that_o which_o one_o will_v think_v christ_n have_v once_o sufficient_o determine_v who_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a do_v not_o christ_n chide_v his_o disciple_n for_o this_o contest_v and_o say_v with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o but_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o better_a way_n to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o as_o flexible_a and_o multiform_a as_o they_o accuse_v it_o to_o be_v then_o by_o make_v it_o so_o to_o themselves_o by_o abusive_a violence_n and_o pervert_v it_o put_v by_o the_o plain_a word_n that_o christ_n can_v speak_v and_o will_v take_v his_o decision_n for_o no_o decision_n when_o it_o make_v against_o the_o decisive_n power_n of_o their_o pope_n 2._o and_o this_o be_v yet_o further_o manifest_a in_o that_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o pope_n have_v be_v whoremonger_n murderer_n heretic_n simoniacal_a buy_v the_o popedom_n with_o money_n and_o poison_v one_o another_o to_o obtain_v the_o popedom_n and_o live_v in_o it_o like_a beast_n than_o man_n of_o all_o which_o i_o only_o appeal_v to_o platina_n and_o other_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n 3._o another_o pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o unconscionable_a impiety_n they_o can_v dispense_v with_o the_o vile_a sin_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o their_o kingdom_n they_o can_v dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o with_o obligation_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o sovereigns_n with_o league_n of_o peace_n and_o amity_n among_o prince_n yea_o they_o can_v themselves_o actual_o promote_v and_o execute_v the_o most_o abominable_a impiety_n that_o will_v but_o help_v they_o to_o attain_v their_o end_n i_o will_v now_o only_a instance_n in_o that_o which_o be_v fresh_a before_o our_o own_o eye_n in_o england_n the_o papist_n know_v that_o anabaptist_n and_o separatist_n be_v erroneous_a they_o know_v that_o ranter_n and_o quaker_n be_v abominable_a and_o yet_o for_o their_o own_o end_n dare_v they_o here_o in_o england_n put_v on_o the_o vizard_n of_o anabaptist_n and_o quaker_n and_o with_o all_o possible_a subtlety_n and_o zeal_n and_o unwearyedness_n go_v up_o and_o down_o to_o seduce_v the_o people_n to_o be_v anabaptist_n and_o quaker_n as_o they_o do_v a_o while_n ago_o to_o be_v seeker_n if_o not_o infidel_n this_o be_v sufficient_o know_v and_o prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o popish_a pretend_a jew_n that_o turn_v anabaptist_n at_o hexham_n and_o be_v take_v at_o newcastle_n and_o other_o of_o they_o take_v but_o by_o many_o other_o testimony_n some_o upon_o oath_n of_o those_o that_o have_v hear_v such_o confession_n from_o their_o mouth_n and_o many_o have_v know_v they_o in_o the_o quaker_n assembly_n that_o have_v see_v they_o before_o elsewhere_o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o they_o divide_v we_o and_o break_v we_o in_o piece_n and_o steal_v a_o credit_n to_o their_o pretend_a unity_n and_o church_n government_n and_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n from_o our_o ministry_n and_o unsettle_v they_o and_o make_v they_o more_o capable_a and_o receptive_a of_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o that_o they_o may_v make_v other_o abroad_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v all_o run_v mad_a and_o can_v that_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n which_o teach_v man_n to_o do_v such_o abominable_a thing_n or_o be_v that_o like_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n that_o must_v be_v thus_o uphold_v be_v that_o person_n guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o dare_v draw_v other_o to_o the_o vile_a blasphemy_n and_o wickedness_n in_o a_o dissemble_a garb_n that_o so_o he_o may_v promote_v his_o own_o cause_n certain_o christ_n need_v not_o such_o hypocrisy_n and_o wickedness_n for_o the_o promote_a of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o it_o seem_v the_o pope_n do_v need_v it_o for_o ●is_n 4._o another_o of_o the_o pillar_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o gross_a and_o impudent_a lie_v do_v i_o not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a i_o dare_v not_o accuse_v they_o of_o it_o i_o will_v give_v you_o but_o these_o three_o instance_n follow_v 1._o they_o do_v raise_v and_o with_o great_a confidence_n propagate_v most_o shameless_a lie_n of_o those_o who_o they_o take_v for_o their_o lead_a adversary_n we_o read_v they_o in_o the_o open_a write_n of_o cochlaeus_fw-la bolse_o staphilu●_n thyraeus_n and_o many_o more_o what_o abominable_a story_n have_v they_o of_o the_o death_n of_o luther_n oecolampadius_n bucer_n calvin_n and_o other_o which_o it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a that_o they_o can_v be_v so_o blind_v with_o mali●e_a as_o to_o believe_v themselves_o what_o conference_n do_v we_o ever_o manage_v with_o they_o which_o they_o do_v not_o misreport_v witness_v the_o late_a ridiculous_a passage_n after_o the_o conference_n between_o fisher_n and_o doctor_n feat_o and_o doctor_n white_a when_o they_o boast_v beyond_o sea_n of_o the_o number_n of_o convert_v and_o in_o particular_a of_o two_o earl_n and_o this_o to_o the_o earl_n of_o warwick_n himself_o not_o know_v he_o who_o be_v feign_v to_o be_v one_o of_o they_o and_o who_o have_v be_v a_o witness_n of_o their_o weakness_n and_o how_o poor_o do_v weston_n in_o his_o pamphlet_n put_v this_o off_o 2._o the_o next_o instance_n i_o will_v give_v be_v their_o abominable_a lie_a legend_n by_o which_o they_o have_v befool_v the_o people_n and_o make_v themselves_o ridiculous_a to_o the_o world_n and_o occasion_v other_o to_o question_v their_o report_n in_o other_o thing_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o some_o of_o they_o as_o doctor_z feat_o have_v gather_v they_o to_o my_o hand_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o foresay_a conference_n yet_o with_o the_o author_n that_o report_v they_o that_o you_o may_v try_v whether_o they_o be_v wrong_v as_o that_o saint_n brigit_fw-la lay_v her_o wimble_a and_o saint_n aldelme_v his_o chesible_a upon_o a_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o support_v they_o vit_fw-mi sanct._n brigit_fw-la &_o vit_fw-mi s._n aldelmi_n that_o saint_n nicolas_n while_o he_o lie_v in_o his_o cradle_n fast_v wednesday_n and_o friday_n these_o day_n he_o will_v suck_v but_o once_o a_o day_n festivale_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-it nicol_n that_o saint_n patrick_n cause_v a_o steal_a sheep_n to_o bleat_v in_o the_o belly_n of_o he_o that_o have_v eat_v he_o legend_n de_fw-fr st._n patricio_n that_o the_o corpse_n of_o saint_n laurence_n at_o the_o come_n of_o saint_n stephens●ody_n ●ody_z smile_v for_o joy_n and_o turn_v himself_o to_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o make_v room_n for_o he_o legend_n de_fw-fr s._n steph._n that_o clemens_n write_v a_o letter_n to_o saint_n james_n seven_o year_n after_o he_o be_v dead_a clem._n ep._n ad_fw-la jac._n in_o ep._n pontif._n that_o saint_n denis_n carry_v his_o head_n in_o his_o hand_n three_o mile_n and_o rest_v at_o each_o place_n of_o the_o post_n that_o be_v set_v between_o paris_n and_o saint_n denis_n breu._n &_o pictur_n diony_n that_o saint_n dunstane_n hold_v the_o devil_n fast_o by_o the_o nose_n with_o a_o pair_n of_o tongue_n leg._n de_fw-fr dunst_n that_o the_o chamber_n of_o our_o lady_n be_v carry_v by_o angel_n through_o the_o air_n from_o palestine_n to_o loretto_n in_o italy_n hist_o de_fw-fr nostre_fw-fr dame_n de_fw-fr lor●tto_n that_o our_o lady_n help_v saint_n thomas_n becket_n to_o mend_v or_o
ground_n of_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n or_o of_o our_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n n._n have_v already_o inquire_v whether_o the_o romanist_n or_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v in_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n we_o shall_v now_o more_o particular_o inquire_v whether_o their_o faith_n or_o we_o be_v build_v on_o the_o sure_a ground_n our_o belief_n be_v thus_o resolve_v we_o believe_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a because_o the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o we_o discern_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o both_o by_o his_o intrinsicke_a and_o extrinsicke_a seal_n or_o attestation_n of_o it_o in_o that_o it_o bear_v his_o image_n and_o superscription_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o undoubted_a uncontrole_v miracle_n and_o other_o effect_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o cause_n the_o reveal_n contain_v sign_n or_o character_n be_v the_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o these_o book_n be_v write_v by_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n and_o be_v uncorrupted_a in_o the_o main_a we_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o by_o the_o evident_a certainty_n of_o the_o historical_a attestation_n and_o tradition_n for_o we_o depend_v not_o bare_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o a_o deceivable_a or_o deceitful_a man_n such_o as_o be_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o any_o fallible_a society_n of_o man_n but_o on_o such_o history_n as_o we_o can_v prove_v by_o plain_a reason_n to_o be_v infallible_a contain_v in_o it_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o party_n the_o same_o testimony_n also_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o very_a heretic_n who_o be_v enemy_n to_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o enough_o also_o even_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o infidel_n to_o confirm_v we_o so_o that_o by_o this_o infallible_a history_n and_o universal_a tradition_n we_o have_v a_o full_a discovery_n that_o these_o book_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n then_o we_o have_v that_o the_o statute_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n james_n or_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v and_o to_o a_o man_n that_o hear_v not_o god_n himself_o or_o the_o lord_n jesus_n or_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v not_o their_o immediate_a inspiration_n we_o know_v not_o how_o the_o law_n of_o heaven_n shall_v be_v more_o fit_o deliver_v in_o a_o ordinary_a rational_a way_n nor_o what_o sure_a other_n mean_v such_o as_o we_o can_v expect_v who_o live_v at_o such_o a_o distance_n from_o the_o first_o receiver_n of_o it_o unless_o we_o will_v have_v god_n to_o speak_v to_o every_o man_n as_o he_o do_v to_o moses_n or_o have_v christ_n or_o apostles_n still_o among_o we_o or_o unless_o god_n must_v make_v we_o all_o prophet_n by_o his_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n and_o last_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o word_n we_o understand_v as_o we_o do_v the_o meaning_n of_o other_o law_n or_o write_n have_v moreover_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v necessary_a because_o of_o the_o sublimity_n and_o spirituality_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o great_a effect_n upon_o our_o heart_n our_o teacher_n by_o translation_n and_o further_a instruction_n be_v our_o helper_n as_o they_o must_v be_v in_o other_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v learn_v and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o they_o without_o and_o of_o the_o spirit_n within_o we_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n especial_o compare_v text_n with_o text_n and_o so_o receive_v the_o sanctify_a impress_n upon_o our_o heart_n and_o thus_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o reform_a catholic_a resolve_v he_o receive_v the_o bible_n from_o the_o hand_n or_o mouth_n of_o his_o teacher_n and_o perhaps_o first_o believe_v they_o fide_fw-la humana_fw-la that_o it_o be_v god_n word_n he_o know_v that_o this_o book_n be_v write_v in_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o infallible_a history_n or_o universal_a tradition_n he_o know_v that_o they_o do_v it_o by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o image_n of_o god_n which_o he_o find_v on_o it_o and_o by_o the_o uncontrole_v miracle_n by_o which_o they_o seal_v it_o he_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a because_o it_o thus_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o be_v most_o true_a of_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n see_v l._n du_fw-fr plessis_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 4._o translat_fw-la pag._n 121.122_o 123._o and_o conradus_n bergius_n prax._n cathol_n can._n p._n 208.209_o 210._o disp_n 2._o §_o 125_o 126._o to_o this_o same_o sense_n vid._n &_o sibrand_n lubbert_n princip_n christ_n dogm_n li._n 1._o pag._n 20_o etc._n etc._n what_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v the_o question_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o discuss_v do_v intimate_v in_o part_n for_o it_o can_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o one_o proposition_n because_o they_o be_v of_o so_o many_o mind_n themselves_o indeed_o we_o may_v see_v in_o this_o their_o foundation_n that_o popery_n be_v a_o very_a maze_n and_o dungeon_n for_o the_o builder_n of_o this_o babel_n be_v all_o in_o confusion_n at_o the_o lay_n of_o their_o first_o stone_n yet_o this_o much_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o agree_v in_o 2._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o duty_n 3._o but_o not_o the_o whole_a rule_n nor_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v the_o other_o part_n 8._o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v god_n word_n after_o a_o sort_n as_o they_o speak_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v its_o authority_n in_o itself_o from_o god_n the_o prime_a truth_n but_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la as_o to_o we_o it_o have_v its_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o act_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o unwritten_a part_n of_o god_n word_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o a_o divine_a revelation_n biblia_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o judge_v both_o of_o this_o tradition_n and_o the_o scripture_n as_o also_o to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n and_o to_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o this_o church_n must_v be_v one_o only_o visible_a infallible_a authorize_v thus_o to_o judge_v by_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v only_o the_o roman_a church_n thus_o far_o the_o most_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v agree_v but_o when_o these_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n come_v to_o be_v open_v they_o fall_v all_o to_o piece_n for_o 1._o sometime_o they_o say_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n word_n after_o a_o sort_n sometime_o that_o it_o be_v some_o middle_a thing_n between_o a_o testimony_n divine_a and_o humane_a 3._o 2._o and_o what_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o a_o mind_n whether_o it_o be_v only_o the_o prime_a truth_n or_o whether_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o material_a object_n be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a but_o i_o confess_v this_o controversy_n be_v more_o verbal_a than_o real_a 3._o ●1_n and_o what_o place_n here_o to_o assign_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o agree_v neither_o etc._n 4._o especial_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o the_o main_a viz._n what_o this_o church_n be_v which_o be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n and_o into_o who_o judgement_n their_o faith_n be_v resolve_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n or_o the_o former_a church_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n only_o at_o least_o in_o case_n of_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o his_o council_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n agree_v not_o as_o the_o french_a and_o venetian_n say_v waldensem_fw-la yea_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o clergy_n only_o or_o the_o laity_n also_o that_o be_v this_o church_n nay_o some_o of_o they_o plead_v universal_a tradition_n as_o holden_n white_n vane_n and_o divers_a other_o englishman_n of_o late_a as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o roman_a tradition_n or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o and_o ordinary_o they_o use_v to_o tell_v we_o of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o to_o mouth_n it_o in_o such_o swell_a word_n that_o the_o simple_a hearer_n will_v little_o think_v that_o by_o all_o the_o church_n they_o mean_v but_o one_o man_n or_o at_o the_o
utmost_a he_o and_o his_o factious_a clergy_n so_o also_o they_o be_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o whether_o 162.163_o the_o bishop_n in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v judge_n with_o the_o pope_n or_o only_o the_o pope_n counsellor_n yea_o or_o what_o a_o general_a council_n be_v though_o they_o all_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n much_o less_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o church_n but_o only_o some_o of_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n yet_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o it_o must_v be_v free_o elect_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n or_o only_o so_o many_o and_o of_o such_o country_n as_o the_o pope_n shall_v choose_v and_o whether_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o council_n must_v concur_v with_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o minor_a part_n may_v not_o serve_v turn_v 164._o 5._o so_o also_o they_o be_v exceed_o disagree_v about_o the_o nature_n and_o extent_n or_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o judge_v 5._o some_o say_v that_o the_o church_n judge_v de_fw-la mediis_fw-la discursive_a sed_fw-la de_fw-fr conclusione_n per_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la propheticam_fw-la &_o divinam_fw-la and_o so_o these_o man_n may_v affirm_v agreeable_o to_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o pope_n definition_n be_v part_n of_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n as_o melchior_n canus_n affirm_v he_o hear_v a_o most_o excellent_a divine_n confess_v and_o cit_v gratian_n and_o innocent_n also_o as_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n 165._o and_o thus_o all_o the_o most_o wicked_a pope_n be_v make_v prophet_n and_o speak_v by_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o other_o of_o they_o 4._o do_v deny_v this_o though_o yet_o they_o know_v not_o how_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a without_o declare_v themselves_o enthusiast_n also_o though_o say_v bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 2._o all_o yield_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v personal_o err_v through_o ignorance_n yet_o they_o be_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o whether_o he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n some_o 6._o say_v he_o may_v not_o and_o other_o that_o its_o most_o pious_a and_o probable_a to_o think_v he_o may_v not_o other_o reject_v that_o as_o false_a 8._o and_o say_v he_o may_v and_o one_o will_v think_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v out_o of_o question_n by_o long_a experience_n before_o this_o time_n and_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o three_o general_a council_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n ubi_fw-la sup_n c._n 11._o some_o say_v 3._o that_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v consult_v and_o give_v his_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v err_v though_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n he_o may_v and_o that_o he_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o court_n and_o council_n though_o not_o as_o a_o private_a doctor_n other_o 40._o say_v that_o he_o can_v err_v when_o he_o intend_v to_o bind_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o receive_v his_o sentence_n or_o when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n 233_o other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v even_o define_v in_o council_n but_o not_o in_o error_n manifest_a to_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o new_a or_o not_o manifest_a point_n 4._o other_o come_v yet_o near_o the_o matter_n and_o tell_v we_o merry_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o err_v in_o judgement_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n because_o when_o he_o first_o err_v thus_o he_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n but_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a conclusion_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o brethren_n the_o like_a disagreement_n there_o be_v among_o they_o about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o general_n council_n some_o will_v make_v it_o the_o proper_a seat_n of_o infallibility_n and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v if_o he_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o council_n else_o he_o may_v other_o 1●_n say_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v if_o it_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n yea_o though_o the_o pope_n legate_n do_v consent_v or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o pope_n instruction_n but_o that_o they_o can_v err_v if_o they_o follow_v they_o or_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o so_o bellarmine_n canus_n and_o the_o late_a champion_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n differ_v as_o they_o have_v shrewd_o do_v when_o council_n have_v depose_v pope_n for_o heresy_n and_o wickedness_n some_o 86._o say_v that_o we_o may_v more_o safe_o follow_v the_o council_n then_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o other_o say_v the_o clean_a contrary_n and_o place_v the_o infallibility_n in_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o make_v it_o his_o work_n to_o reclaim_v the_o council_n though_o they_o be_v thus_o all_o in_o piece_n among_o themselves_o even_o about_o these_o their_o fundamental_o yet_o be_v it_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o deceitful_a writer_n to_o make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o agree_v and_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o they_o have_v universal_a tradition_n etc._n etc._n that_o by_o the_o noise_n of_o these_o big_a word_n they_o may_v do_v that_o which_o they_o can_v do_v by_o argument_n thus_o doctor_n vane_n their_o late_a proselyte_n and_o divers_a other_o do_v in_o their_o write_n overlook_v all_o their_o own_o disagreement_n and_o pass_v on_o as_o confident_o in_o their_o boast_n of_o the_o universal_a consent_n as_o if_o they_o be_v either_o such_o novice_n as_o understand_v not_o their_o own_o religion_n or_o such_o harden_a seducer_n as_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o other_o shall_v understand_v it_o here_o be_v in_o this_o our_o question_n contain_v three_o of_o the_o great_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n 1._o whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o scripture_n to_o all_o the_o world_n 2._o whether_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o clergy_n be_v in●llible_a in_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n 3._o whether_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o this_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o they_o our_o intent_n in_o this_o present_a dispute_n be_v to_o deal_v most_o with_o the_o second_o yet_o so_o as_o it_o be_v connex_v with_o the_o other_o two_o and_o therefore_o shall_v take_v they_o in_o on_o the_o by_o but_o say_v less_o to_o they_o distinct_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o there_o be_v so_o much_o say_v already_o by_o our_o divine_n as_o all_o the_o papist_n on_o earth_n will_v never_o be_v able_a solid_o to_o answer_v to_o let_v pass_v all_o those_o beyond_o sea_n that_o have_v effectual_o confound_v they_o we_o have_v britain_n enough_o to_o hold_v they_o perpetual_a work_n as_o jewel_n reignolds_n whitaker_n white_n field_n usher_n camero_n baronius_n davenant_n chillingworth_n to_o who_o they_o have_v late_o lose_v their_o cause_n by_o show_v in_o a_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a reply_n how_o little_a they_o have_v to_o say_v against_o he_o with_o many_o more_o who_o will_v either_o remain_v unanswered_a or_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v worse_o to_o the_o adversary_n cause_n than_o silence_n itself_o which_o we_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n already_o to_o foretell_v as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o controversy_n to_o dispatch_v it_o in_o short_a as_o we_o distinguish_v between_o judicium_fw-la descretionis_fw-la directionis_fw-la &_o decisionis_fw-la a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n of_o direction_n and_o of_o decision_n so_o we_o kn●w_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o late_a that_o proper_o denominate_v a_o judge_n in_o the_o public_a and_o ordinary_a sense_n take_v our_o doctrine_n in_o these_o few_o proposition_n 1._o we_o say_v that_o every_o christian_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n to_o know_v that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v true_a and_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o he_o be_v no_o christian_a or_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o judgement_n or_o reason_n but_o a_o brutish_a thing_n this_o therefore_o we_o confess_v the_o pope_n either_o have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v 2._o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o judgement_n of_o direction_n that_o be_v it_o belong_v to_o he_o by_o office_n to_o be_v a_o director_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o teach_v those_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o yet_o receive_v it_o not_o and_o to_o confirm_v those_o in_o it_o that_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v ability_n for_o the_o work_n of_o this_o office_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o true_a pastor_n bishop_n or_o preacher_n this_o power_n we_o shall_v confess_v to_o be_v in_o he_o as_o in_o other_o 3._o it_o belong_v to_o these_o teacher_n also_o to_o be_v special_o careful_a to_o preserve_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n from_o corruption_n and_o
other_o do_v not_o the_o text_n speak_v but_o to_o the_o same_o person_n and_o not_o in_o one_o half_a to_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o half_a to_o other_o i_o may_v well_o argue_v therefore_o in_o this_o manner_n to_o whosoever_o christ_n here_o promise_v that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v to_o he_o only_o do_v he_o speak_v in_o this_o text_n but_o he_o promise_v only_o to_o peter_n here_o that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v therefore_o it_o be_v only_a peter_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o major_n be_v clear_a according_a to_o the_o intelligible_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o bellarmine_n have_v not_o yet_o prove_v a_o mystical_a sense_n the_o minor_a be_v confess_v by_o himself_o last_o bellarmine_n say_v de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 3._o c._n 3._o that_o only_a out_o of_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o scripture_n effectual_a argument_n be_v to_o be_v fetch_v butler_n this_o great_a argument_n of_o he_o for_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n be_v not_o fetch_v out_o of_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n it_o be_v uneffectual_a and_o unjust_a the_o second_o text_n which_o he_o cite_v to_o this_o use_n be_v mat._n 16._o on_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o a_o double_a argument_n he_o will_v fetch_v from_o hence_o one_o from_o the_o name_n rock_n the_o other_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o foundation_n which_o both_o imply_v firmeness_n ans_fw-fr 1._o note_v that_o here_o be_v in_o the_o text_n not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o any_o other_o or_o of_o infallibility_n 2._o how_o do_v he_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o mean_v peter_n faith_n or_o that_o doctrine_n which_o he_o confess_v but_o peter_n himself_o 3_o if_o he_o have_v prove_v it_o be_v not_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n call_v the_o foundation_n eph._n 2.20_o so_o that_o here_o be_v no_o more_o promise_v to_o he_o than_o what_o be_v elsewhere_o promise_v and_o give_v to_o the_o rest_n only_o his_o present_a confession_n occasion_v the_o promise_n to_o be_v make_v express_o and_o particular_a at_o that_o time_n to_o he_o 4._o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n on_o which_o we_o be_v build_v and_o yet_o their_o successor_n be_v not_o so_o so_o though_o peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o all_o or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n be_v so_o the_o three_o text_n which_o bellarmine_n cit_v be_v joh._n last_o feed_v my_o sheep_n where_o note_n again_o 1._o that_o here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o rome_n or_o infallibility_n 2._o do_v not_o christ_n bid_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n feed_v as_o well_o as_o peter_n sure_a mat._n 28._o he_o bid_v they_o all_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o and_o teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatever_o he_o command_v they_o and_o what_o can_v peter_n do_v more_o in_o feed_v yea_o three_o be_v not_o all_o pastor_n though_o inferior_a to_o apostle_n bind_v to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o thence_o that_o they_o be_v infallible_a 4._o bellarmine_n will_v next_o prove_v this_o from_o the_o high_a priest_n wear_v the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n exod._n 28._o when_o he_o first_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o jew_n or_o christian_n what_o these_o be_v and_o yet_o it_o will_v serve_v he_o for_o a_o proof_n 2._o the_o priest_n be_v not_o infallible_a for_o all_o their_o urim_n and_o thummim_n therefore_o no_o more_o be_v the_o pope_n they_o judge_v christ_n not_o to_o be_v the_o messiah_n and_o therefore_o crucify_v he_o they_o live_v and_o die_v infidel_n and_o harden_v the_o people_n in_o the_o same_o infidelity_n for_o which_o they_o be_v break_v off_o and_o unchurch_v 3._o and_o whereas_o he_o argue_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v infallible_a because_o the_o people_n be_v to_o go_v to_o he_o for_o resolution_n of_o difficulty_n and_o obey_v they_o deut._n 17._o i_o must_v say_v that_o bellarmine_n have_v some_o fault_n in_o his_o eye_n that_o cause_v he_o to_o overlook_v the_o judge_n and_o name_n only_o the_o high_a priest_n god_n send_v they_o to_o the_o judge_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a magistrate_n in_o those_o day_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o any_o man_n that_o will_v read_v the_o text_n may_v see_v if_o therefore_o the_o one_o of_o they_o be_v infallible_a because_o of_o this_o why_o be_v not_o the_o other_o so_o too_o but_o perhaps_o they_o will_v make_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o successor_n both_o of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o priest_n and_o so_o to_o be_v the_o universal_a emperor_n as_o well_o as_o the_o universal_a bishop_n and_o use_v both_o his_o sword_n that_o so_o this_o promise_n may_v belong_v only_o to_o he_o for_o he_o will_v hardly_o grant_v every_o king_n or_o judge_n to_o be_v infallible_a 4._o by_o this_o rule_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n also_o shall_v be_v infallible_a for_o the_o people_n be_v also_o to_o receive_v the_o law_n at_o their_o mouth_n 5._o when_o be_v there_o ever_o one_o priest_n in_o any_o age_n so_o impudent_a at_o bellarmine_n and_o his_o faction_n be_v to_o plead_v for_o or_o pretend_v a_o infallibility_n in_o themselves_o let_v they_o name_v one_o priest_n or_o person_n if_o they_o can_v that_o ever_o have_v such_o a_o conceit_n of_o themselves_o except_o it_o be_v god_n prophet_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o prophecy_n 6._o what_o if_o the_o jew_n high_a priest_n have_v be_v infallible_a what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n any_o more_o than_o to_o another_o man_n have_v he_o indeed_o yet_o prove_v himself_o successor_n of_o the_o jew_n high_a priest_n except_o as_o a_o corrupter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n well!_o you_o have_v hear_v all_o the_o scripture_n argument_n that_o bellarmine_n have_v to_o bring_v for_o he_o bring_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n may_v i_o not_o well_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o they_o be_v such_o ill_a friend_n to_o scripture_n who_o have_v no_o more_o scripture_n that_o be_v none_o at_o all_o to_o befriend_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o may_v i_o not_o just_o recite_v again_o bellarmine_n own_o conclusion_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 3._o and_o from_o thence_o show_v they_o that_o their_o cause_n be_v build_v upon_o confess_v fraud_n and_o vanity_n it_o be_v agree_v between_o we_o say_v bellarmine_n that_o only_o out_o of_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o scripture_n effectual_a argument_n be_v fetch_v but_o bellarmine_n bring_v no_o one_o argument_n for_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n out_o of_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o he_o bring_v no_o one_o effectual_a argument_n from_o scripture_n but_o yet_o one_o other_o argument_n he_o have_v though_o not_o from_o scripture_n and_o no_o more_o and_o that_o be_v from_o a_o double_a pretend_a experience_n and_o his_o first_o experience_n be_v that_o in_o all_o the_o other_o patriarchal_a seat_n there_o have_v be_v heretic_n but_o not_o in_o that_o of_o rome_n but_o here_o 1._o bellarmine_n must_v be_v judge_n or_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v a_o party_n before_o all_o the_o patriarch_n can_v be_v thus_o condemn_v 2._o and_o what_o if_o that_o be_v true_a can_v he_o say_v the_o like_a of_o all_o the_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o patriarch_n if_o not_o they_o may_v as_o well_o hence_o prove_v themselves_o infallible_a as_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v 3._o whether_o ever_o there_o be_v in_o the_o chair_n at_o rome_n either_o pope_n liberius_n a_o arrian_n pope_n honorius_n a_o monothel●te_n pope_n john_n deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o abundance_n more_o such_o like_a we_o shall_v have_v fit_a opportunity_n to_o open_v anon_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o this_o experinemt_a of_o bellarmine_n his_o second_o experiment_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n without_o a_o council_n have_v condemn_v many_o heresy_n which_o upon_o that_o very_a account_n have_v be_v take_v for_o true_a heresy_n by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n ans_fw-fr but_o you_o must_v first_o unchurch_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o damn_v most_o of_o the_o christian_n on_o earth_n the_o greek_n armenian_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n and_o make_v your_o own_o faction_n to_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n before_o you_o will_v ever_o give_v we_o the_o least_o proof_n of_o this_o all_o the_o church_n do_v not_o do_v that_o which_o your_o flatterer_n do_v nor_o do_v
ride_v or_o go_v as_o far_o as_o our_o horse_n or_o leg_n can_v carry_v we_o to_o see_v it_o what_o can_v we_o take_v you_o for_o but_o the_o most_o shameless_a sort_n of_o cheater_n if_o you_o can_v accuse_v we_o of_o negligence_n as_o if_o we_o may_v see_v your_o miracle_n if_o we_o will_v but_o travail_v for_o it_o or_o of_o unbelief_n as_o if_o we_o deny_v that_o which_o we_o have_v evidence_n of_o we_o may_v bear_v the_o blame_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n i_o profess_v as_o weak_a as_o i_o be_o i_o will_v go_v many_o a_o hundred_o mile_n to_o see_v such_o miracle_n as_o you_o boast_v of_o if_o i_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n of_o expectation_n that_o i_o may_v not_o lose_v my_o labour_n and_o i_o will_v read_v over_o any_o volume_n that_o i_o be_v able_a to_o find_v suciffient_a testimony_n of_o they_o but_o where_o be_v this_o testimony_n knot_n refer_v we_o to_o brierly_n and_o other_o to_o such_o like_a reciter_n of_o their_o fable_n and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o miracle_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o 1._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o church_n mention_n in_o scripture_n and_o these_o be_v against_o popery_n so_o that_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o contradict_v popery_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n in_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o confirm_v 2._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o follow_a church_n till_o six_o hundred_o these_o be_v comparative_o few_o and_o less_o certain_a and_o fabulous_a mixture_n in_o many_o of_o the_o report_n of_o they_o but_o whatever_o they_o be_v they_o be_v no_o confirmation_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o universal_a episcopacy_n or_o jurisdiction_n which_o neither_o the_o instrument_n of_o those_o miracle_n nor_o any_o man_n else_o on_o earth_n as_o far_o as_o can_v be_v prove_v do_v then_o believe_v and_o whereas_o there_o be_v some_o ceremonious_a foppery_n that_o be_v then_o use_v which_o the_o papist_n do_v yet_o use_v and_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o these_o miracle_n be_v confirmation_n of_o they_o we_o deny_v it_o and_o profess_v the_o nullity_n of_o their_o pretend_a proof_n they_o say_v if_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n how_o can_v we_o believe_v they_o in_o any_o thing_n i_o answ_v because_o that_o 1._o their_o miracle_n be_v express_v attestation_n to_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o christianity_n but_o not_o to_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v think_v nor_o can_v they_o ever_o work_v a_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v such_o private_a opinion_n 2._o and_o the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n which_o their_o miracle_n do_v attest_v be_v more_o unquestionable_a before_o attest_v by_o scripture_n and_o former_a miracle_n whereas_o the_o error_n which_o they_o introduce_v be_v contradict_v by_o scripture_n and_o the_o miracle_n that_o attest_v it_o and_o whereas_o they_o will_v make_v the_o apostle_n case_n to_o be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o father_n it_o be_v very_o much_o different_a for_o though_o the_o apostle_n miracle_n be_v attestation_n to_o all_o their_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o to_o some_o part_n that_o be_v because_o they_o be_v officer_n commissioned_n by_o christ_n to_o that_o work_n to_o deliver_v his_o doctrine_n first_o to_o the_o world_n as_o inspire_v infallible_a man_n and_o to_o seal_v it_o to_o posterity_n for_o future_a certainty_n but_o the_o father_n have_v no_o such_o work_n in_o commission_n but_o only_o to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n thus_o seal_v and_o deliver_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o their_o miracle_n be_v to_o another_o more_o private_a and_o restrain_v use_n according_a to_o their_o commission_n and_o work_n that_o be_v to_o convert_v those_o person_n to_o the_o faith_n that_o know_v of_o they_o by_o a_o subservient_fw-fr attestation_n so_o that_o it_o can_v oblige_v none_o to_o believe_v they_o in_o other_o thing_n much_o less_o in_o their_o mistake_n 3._o the_o three_o sort_n of_o miracle_n be_v those_o of_o late_a time_n contain_v in_o their_o legend_n and_o serious_o will_v the_o jesuit_n persuade_v we_o that_o these_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o miracle_n mention_v in_o scripture_n or_o any_o whit_n like_o they_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o former_a disputation_n more_o you_o may_v see_v of_o their_o ridiculous_a vanity_n in_o doctor_n franc._n whites_n defence_n of_o his_o brother_n pag._n 147.148_o we_o must_v believe_v 5._o baronius_n that_o saint_n fulbeck_n suck_v our_o lady_n breast_n and_o antonine_n 92._o that_o saint_n dominick_n walk_v in_o the_o rain_n and_o be_v not_o wet_a and_o his_o book_n lie_v all_o night_n in_o the_o river_n be_v take_v out_o dry_a and_o without_o hurt_n that_o the_o same_o friar_n spy_v the_o devil_n sit_v in_o the_o church_n like_o a_o sparrow_n and_o call_v he_o to_o he_o deplumed_a he_o and_o so_o put_v he_o to_o a_o great_a reproach_n and_o that_o he_o make_v the_o devil_n hold_v he_o the_o candle_n in_o his_o bare_a finger_n till_o they_o be_v burn_v that_o a_o lecherous_a priest_n by_o kiss_v his_o hand_n be_v cure_v of_o incontinency_n that_o saint_n bernard_n by_o blessing_n their_o ale_n and_o give_v it_o some_o lewd_a person_n to_o drink_v cause_v god_n grace_n to_o enter_v into_o they_o that_o he_o make_v a_o old_a grandam_n of_o above_o fourscore_o year_n old_a to_o give_v suck_v to_o the_o infant_n when_o the_o mother_n be_v dead_a that_o he_o kill_v fly_n by_o excommunication_n and_o excommunicate_v the_o devil_n and_o thereby_o disable_v he_o from_o lie_v with_o woman_n recitant_fw-la that_o saint_n francis_n turn_v a_o capon_n into_o a_o fish_n and_o water_n into_o wine_n make_v the_o rock_n send_v forth_o water_n and_o anchor_n to_o swim_v preach_v to_o bird_n and_o beast_n to_o praise_n god_n till_o they_o be_v so_o attentive_a to_o his_o doctrine_n that_o they_o will_v let_v he_o touch_v they_o and_o will_v not_o depart_v till_o he_o give_v they_o leave_v and_o have_v bless_v they_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n convert_v a_o cade_n lamb_n by_o preach_v to_o he_o so_o that_o he_o will_v frequent_v the_o church_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o kneel_v before_o the_o altar_n of_o our_o lady_n at_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n by_o which_o example_n surius_n call_v on_o the_o heretic_n to_o learn_v to_o worship_v the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o to_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n also_o that_o he_o cause_v swallow_n grasshopper_n and_o a_o wild_a falcon_n to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n abundance_n more_o of_o the_o like_a more_o foppish_a and_o too_o many_o to_o be_v here_o meddle_v with_o their_o legend_n be_v full_a of_o and_o these_o be_v their_o proof_n of_o their_o true_a church_n and_o infallibility_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v know_v by_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o scripture_n i_o think_v indeed_o that_o these_o proof_n be_v well_o say_v to_o be_v independent_a of_o scripture_n for_o the_o less_o a_o man_n believe_v the_o scripture_n the_o more_o he_o be_v like_a to_o believe_v these_o but_o by_o what_o certain_a or_o probable_a testimony_n shall_v we_o know_v that_o ever_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v what!_o must_v we_o needs_o believe_v every_o dote_a friar_n that_o give_v we_o but_o his_o bare_a word_n and_o that_o many_o a_o year_n if_o not_o age_n after_o these_o miracle_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v wrought_v must_v we_o believe_v they_o that_o so_o shameful_o contradict_v one_o another_o math._n paris_n 329_o say_v that_o saint_n francis_n be_v brand_v with_o his_o five_o wound_n fifteen_o day_n before_o he_o die_v but_o bonaventure_n vincentius_n and_o surius_n say_v he_o have_v they_o two_o year_n before_o he_o die_v nay_o must_v we_o believe_v as_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o papist_n themselves_o believe_v not_o how_o common_o do_v they_o among_o themselves_o deride_v these_o story_n as_o pious_a fraud_n and_o some_o of_o they_o sound_o chide_v the_o author_n i_o will_v at_o this_o time_n cite_v but_o the_o word_n of_o one_o and_o that_o be_v no_o babe_n even_o melch._n canus_n who_o bellarmine_n refer_v we_o to_o so_o oft_o lib._n 11._o cap._n 6._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 33.34_o quidam_fw-la enim_fw-la corum_fw-la aut_fw-la veritatis_fw-la amore_fw-la inducti_fw-la aut_fw-la ingenu●_fw-fr pudoris_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v some_o of_o they_o the_o heathen_a historian_n either_o induce_v with_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n or_o in_o ingenuous_a modesty_n do_v so_o far_o abhor_v a_o lie_n that_o perhaps_o we_o shall_v be_v now_o ashamed_a that_o some_o heathen_a historian_n be_v true_a than_o we_o i_o speak_v rather_o with_o grief_n then_o in_o reproach_n the_o life_n of_o the_o philosopher_n be_v much_o more_o severe_o that_o be_v true_o
write_v by_o laertius_n than_o the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v by_o christian_n and_o suetonius_n do_v far_o more_o incorrupt_o and_o more_o entire_o set_v forth_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o roman_n caesar_n than_o catholic_n have_v set_v forth_o i_o say_v not_o the_o affair_n of_o emperor_n but_o of_o martyr_n virgin_n and_o confessor_n for_o they_o but_o we_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n either_o follow_v their_o own_o affection_n or_o else_o of_o set_a purpose_n forge_v so_o many_o thing_n that_o indeed_o i_o be_o not_o only_o ashamed_a of_o they_o but_o also_o weary_a of_o they_o for_o i_o know_v that_o these_o have_v bring_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n small_a profit_n but_o much_o disprofit_v i_o spare_v mens_fw-la name_v because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o who_o write_v church_n history_n feign_o and_o deceitful_o can_v be_v good_a and_o sincere_a man_n and_o that_o their_o whole_a narration_n be_v invent_v either_o for_o lucre_n or_o for_o error_n whereof_o one_o be_v filthy_a and_o the_o other_o pernicious_a the_o complaint_n of_o ludovicus_n be_v most_o just_a of_o some_o feign_a history_n in_o the_o church_n he_o do_v indeed_o prudent_o and_o grave_o reprove_v they_o that_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o piety_n to_o forge_n lie_v for_o religion_n a_o thing_n that_o be_v very_o pernicious_a and_o no_o whit_n necessary_a for_o we_o be_v wont_n not_o to_o believe_v a_o liar_n even_o when_o he_o tell_v truth_n they_o therefore_o who_o by_o false_a and_o lie_a write_n will_v stir_v up_o the_o mind_n of_o mortal_a man_n to_o worship_v the_o saint_n these_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v do_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o make_v man_n deny_v belief_n to_o truth_n because_o of_o falsehood_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v it_o to_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o history_n to_o fiction_n and_o fable_n as_o if_o the_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n do_v need_v our_o lie_n but_o while_o some_o do_v too_o much_o indulge_v their_o own_o affection_n and_o write_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o writer_n mind_n and_o not_o the_o truth_n do_v dictate_v they_o make_v we_o such_o saint_n sometime_o as_o the_o saint_n themselves_o will_v not_o be_v if_o they_o can_v can_v any_o man_n believe_v that_o saint_n francis_n be_v use_v to_o take_v the_o louse_n on_o he_o again_o which_o he_o have_v shake_v off_o he_o the_o writer_n think_v this_o be_v part_n of_o the_o man_n holiness_n but_o so_o do_v not_o i_o who_o know_v that_o the_o holy_a man_n be_v please_v with_o poverty_n but_o not_o with_o filthiness_n and_o how_o ridiculous_a be_v this_o that_o the_o devil_n rage_v on_o a_o time_n against_o our_o father_n dominicke_n be_v constrain_v by_o this_o saint_n to_o hold_v the_o candle_n so_o long_o in_o his_o hand_n till_o it_o do_v not_o only_o trouble_v he_o but_o incredible_o pain_v he_o such_o example_n can_v be_v number_v but_o in_o these_o few_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n may_v be_v understand_v which_o have_v darken_v the_o history_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a saint_n they_o do_v therefore_o exceed_o wrong_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n who_o think_v they_o do_v not_o well_o set_v forth_o the_o excellent_a deed_n of_o the_o saint_n unless_o they_o adorn_v they_o with_o feign_a revelation_n and_o miracle_n wherein_o the_o impudence_n of_o man_n have_v neither_o spare_v the_o holy_a virgin_n nor_o the_o lord_n christ_n of_o late_a year_n when_o i_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o hear_v by_o some_o that_o aloysius_n lippomannus_n be_v heal_v this_o disease_n by_o write_v a_o history_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o a_o constant_a and_o grave_a speech_n but_o i_o can_v never_o yet_o see_v this_o nor_o any_o other_o which_o i_o can_v allow_v of_o all_o those_o that_o have_v come_v into_o my_o hand_n ☜_o so_o far_o for_o melch._n canus_n and_o do_v their_o own_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a writer_n cry_v out_o of_o lie_n and_o history_n so_o much_o more_o false_a than_o the_o heathen_n and_o impudent_a forgery_n and_o say_v that_o they_o never_o see_v any_o of_o these_o history_n which_o they_o can_v allow_v of_o and_o yet_o must_v we_o needs_o make_v these_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n instead_o of_o the_o seal_a word_n of_o god_n what_o a_o religion_n have_v the_o papist_n that_o be_v build_v on_o such_o a_o foundation_n yea_o of_o the_o report_n of_o some_o of_o the_o late_a writer_n that_o be_v next_o before_o popery_n i_o will_v add_v a_o few_o more_o word_n of_o canus_n ib._n li._n 11._o pag._n 337._o cicero_n think_v demosthenes_n nod_v sometime_o and_o horace_n think_v so_o of_o homer_n himself_o for_o though_o they_o be_v excellent_a yet_o but_o man_n and_o the_o same_o perhaps_o may_v i_o say_v just_o and_o true_o of_o beda_n and_o gregory_n one_o of_o they_o in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o english_a the_o other_o in_o his_o dialogue_n do_v write_v certain_a miracle_n talk_v of_o and_o believe_v by_o the_o vulgar_a which_o the_o critic_n of_o this_o age_n will_v judge_v to_o be_v uncertain_a i_o shall_v have_v more_o approve_v those_o history_n if_o their_o author_n have_v according_a to_o the_o aforesaid_a rule_n to_o severity_n of_o judgement_n join_v more_o care_n in_o their_o choice_n and_o how_o he_o let_v fly_v at_o the_o lie_v of_o antonius_n and_o valvacen_n the_o next_o page_n show_v and_o page_n 338.339_o how_o he_o censure_v eusebius_n himself_o but_o i_o must_v forbear_v more_o such_o citation_n lest_o i_o weary_a the_o reader_n it_o be_v now_o long_o since_o doctor_n john_n white_n tell_v they_o of_o their_o 1._o cajetan_n word_n who_o say_v it_o can_v be_v know_v infallible_o that_o the_o miracle_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n ground_v the_o canonization_n of_o saint_n be_v true_a and_o their_o c._n antoninus_n florent_fw-la say_v of_o the_o vision_n of_o bernard_n and_o brigit_fw-la about_o the_o virgin_n mary_n conception_n they_o be_v fantastic_a vision_n and_o man_n dream_n and_o their_o claudius_n espeucaeus_fw-la 21._o say_v no_o stable_n be_v so_o full_a of_o dung_n as_o the_o legend_n be_v full_a of_o fable_n yea_o very_a fiction_n be_v in_o their_o portess_n and_o gerson_n 1._o all_o these_o the_o church_n receive_v and_o permit_v they_o to_o be_v read_v not_o as_o certain_o true_a but_o more_o attend_v to_o what_o may_v be_v in_o pious_a recogitation_n then_o to_o what_o indeed_o be_v do_v and_o doctor_n white_a then_o make_v a_o challenge_n to_o they_o that_o we_o will_v admit_v of_o all_o those_o miracle_n which_o be_v report_v by_o such_o man_n as_o some_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n do_v open_o note_v for_o liar_n 158._o which_o challenge_v the_o popish_a replyer_n have_v no_o mind_n it_o seem_v to_o take_v up_o but_o though_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o romanist_n to_o prove_v their_o miracle_n which_o prove_v their_o infallibility_n without_o scripture_n and_o not_o to_o we_o to_o prove_v the_o negative_a yet_o i_o shall_v try_v to_o shame_v their_o confidence_n by_o a_o few_o pertinent_a question_n when_o it_o shall_v appear_v how_o little_o they_o have_v to_o say_v in_o answer_n to_o they_o q._n 1._o and_o first_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o they_o whether_o the_o miracle_n that_o prove_v their_o infallibility_n without_o scripture_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o present_a church_n or_o by_o the_o church_n of_o former_a age_n only_o if_o by_o the_o present_a why_o can_v we_o see_v they_o why_o be_v we_o still_o send_v to_o saint_n brigit_fw-la or_o saint_n francis_n or_o saint_n somebody_o that_o be_v long_o ago_o dead_a and_o go_v we_o think_v once_o we_o have_v have_v one_o near_o we_o here_o i_o mean_v the_o boy_n of_o bilson_n who_o do_v wondrous_a thing_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o papist_n but_o in_o the_o issue_n by_o the_o industry_n of_o bishop_n morton_n he_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o counterfeit_n and_o confess_v himself_o train_v up_o by_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o cheat_n but_o if_o it_o only_o the_o generation_n that_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v that_o wrought_v miracle_n than_o i_o will_v further_o ask_v 1._o do_v it_o not_o seem_v then_o that_o your_o church_n be_v apostate_n in_o that_o it_o have_v lose_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n which_o you_o suppose_v so_o necessary_a and_o how_o will_v the_o gift_n of_o your_o predecessor_n prove_v your_o present_a infallibility_n any_o more_o than_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o predecessor_n of_o the_o greek_a bishop_n will_v prove_v their_o infallibility_n that_o now_o be_v 2._o if_o past_a miracle_n may_v serve_v without_o present_a then_o what_o need_v any_o more_o than_o the_o old_a miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o why_o be_v not_o all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n infallible_a as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n see_v all_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n
and_o many_o thousand_o more_o therefore_o those_o past_a miracle_n shall_v prove_v all_o bishop_n infallible_a that_o succeed_v they_o 2._o quest_n i_o desire_v also_o to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v your_o pope_n himself_o that_o work_v these_o miracle_n or_o some_o other_o person_n and_o if_o other_o whether_o it_o be_v only_o some_o of_o your_o church_n or_o all_o if_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n himself_o why_o then_o have_v we_o more_o murder_n than_o miracle_n charge_v on_o your_o pope_n by_o your_o own_o historian_n and_o why_o will_v not_o his_o holiness_n do_v some_o miracle_n in_o charity_n to_o poor_a heretic_n why_o do_v you_o boast_v no_o more_o of_o you_o pope_n miracle_n one_o i_o confess_v we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o golden_a legend_n that_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o woman_n kiss_v his_o hand_n be_v so_o vehement_o tempt_v with_o lust_n that_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o cut_v his_o hand_n off_o but_o the_o virgin_n mary_n have_v compassion_n on_o he_o join_v his_o hand_n to_o his_o body_n again_o but_o this_o be_v no_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v saint_n becket_n and_o saint_n brigit_fw-la and_o saint_n katherine_n that_o you_o send_v we_o to_o for_o miracle_n and_o not_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o i_o will_v further_o know_v whether_o one_o man_n miracle_n will_v prove_v another_o man_n infallible_a unless_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o assertion_n of_o that_o other_o man_n infallibility_n it_o shall_v rather_o prove_v saint_n brigit_fw-la and_o saint_n katherine_n infallible_a that_o be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o revelation_n and_o miracle_n than_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v none_o will_v it_o prove_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n infallible_a if_o any_o one_o that_o be_v under_o his_o government_n shall_v work_v a_o miracle_n or_o be_v you_o sure_a that_o there_o be_v no_o miracle_n wrought_v among_o the_o grecian_n abassine_n or_o armenian_n moreover_o if_o you_o be_v all_o miracle_n worker_n why_o can_v we_o never_o see_v one_o nor_o have_v certain_a proof_n of_o one_o but_o if_o it_o be_v but_o some_o very_a few_o of_o you_o as_o good_a as_o none_o how_o will_v that_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o your_o whole_a church_n when_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v miracle_n that_o prove_v their_o own_o infallibility_n but_o that_o prove_v not_o the_o infallibility_n of_o all_o in_o the_o church_n nor_o of_o every_o teacher_n in_o it_o nor_o of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o they_o 3._o quest_n if_o your_o pope_n and_o church_n be_v prove_v infallible_a by_o such_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v do_v it_o not_o follow_v then_o that_o all_o your_o pope_n be_v inspire_v person_n or_o prophet_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v by_o which_o the_o gift_n of_o infallibility_n be_v convey_v to_o they_o 4._o quest_n yea_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o all_o your_o church_n be_v inspire_v prophet_n if_o all_o your_o church_n be_v thus_o infallible_a but_o you_o can_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v too_o easy_o believe_v these_o if_o you_o have_v apostolic_a infallibility_n ground_v on_o the_o like_a miracle_n then_o must_v you_o not_o be_v each_o one_o dis-junct_o infallible_a as_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o not_o only_o altogether_o 5._o quest_n and_o be_v it_o not_o plain_a then_o that_o all_o your_o dictate_v be_v god_n word_n if_o you_o have_v the_o same_o seal_n and_o inspiration_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v and_o so_o your_o pope_n at_o least_o if_o not_o each_o one_o of_o you_o must_v make_v we_o new_a revelation_n or_o new_a scripture_n and_o be_v not_o this_o heinous_a arrogancy_n thus_o to_o equal_v yourselves_o with_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n when_o you_o be_v none_o they_o can_v but_o be_v infallible_a and_o so_o you_o say_v be_v the_o pope_n they_o can_v but_o seal_v their_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n and_o so_o you_o say_v do_v your_o church_n 6._o quest_n will_v you_o grant_v that_o we_o be_v all_o infallible_a here_o in_o england_n if_o we_o can_v prove_v any_o miracle_n do_v among_o we_o and_o by_o we_o 7._o quest_n be_v it_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o miracle_n that_o it_o be_v not_o control_v by_o some_o great_a miracle_n or_o evidence_n otherwise_o the_o magician_n in_o egypt_n and_o ●imon_n magus_n may_v have_v go_v away_o with_o better_a reputation_n but_o your_o pretend_a miracle_n be_v control_v by_o far_o great_a and_o sure_a and_o therefore_o of_o no_o force_n for_o you_o be_v to_o confirm_v a_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o many_o sure_a miracle_n this_o we_o be_v still_o ready_a to_o prove_v though_o here_o we_o take_v it_o for_o certain_a but_o you_o use_v to_o decline_v that_o trial_n 8._o quest_n be_v not_o every_o priest_n infallible_a and_o every_o church_n that_o have_v the_o eucharist_n according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n for_o sure_a transubstantiation_n be_v a_o miracle_n i_o do_v not_o think_v you_o will_v deny_v it_o and_o a_o priest_n even_o in_o deadly_a sin_n may_v be_v a_o instrument_n of_o this_o miracle_n if_o your_o church_n be_v infallible_a be_v there_o then_o no_o eucharist_n among_o the_o abassine_n greek_n or_o any_o that_o subject_n not_o to_o you_o or_o be_v they_o all_o infallible_a and_o if_o miracle_n be_v as_o common_a as_o transubstantiation_n the_o privilege_n prove_v by_o they_o must_v be_v as_o common_a so_o much_o to_o master_n knot_n first_o proof_n of_o his_o infallibility_n without_o scripture_n his_o second_o independent_a proof_n be_v sanctity_n but_o sir_n 1._o be_v all_o saint_n infallible_a sure_o you_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o 2._o will_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o man_n as_o saint_n francis_n or_o saint_n dominicke_n prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v no_o sanctity_n by_o what_o mean_n rather_o if_o saint_n be_v infallible_a a_o murder_v simoniacal_a drunken_a fornicate_a pope_n as_o you_o confess_v many_o of_o they_o be_v be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v infallible_a especial_o saint_n brigit_fw-la can_v make_v the_o pope_n infallible_a by_o that_o sanctity_n that_o will_v not_o make_v or_o prove_v herself_o infallible_a 3._o who_o must_v be_v judge_n of_o your_o sanctity_n and_o we_o yourselves_o no_o doubt_n for_o my_o part_n if_o my_o salvation_n lie_v whole_o upon_o the_o pass_n of_o a_o righteous_a censure_n between_o we_o in_o this_o point_n i_o must_v needs_o profess_v that_o even_o in_o england_n where_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v of_o their_o best_a sort_n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o common_a way_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o a_o discountenanced_a way_n and_o where_o they_o be_v but_o few_o yet_o i_o have_v know_v so_o few_o of_o they_o that_o have_v not_o be_v common_a swearer_n curser_n drunkard_n whoremonger_n or_o the_o like_a and_o yet_o few_o that_o ever_o manifest_v any_o serious_a mind_v of_o god_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v or_o any_o experience_n of_o the_o work_n of_o sanctification_n on_o their_o heart_n and_o who_o show_v any_o more_o holiness_n than_o what_o say_v in_o certain_a ceremony_n word_n gesture_n or_o other_o formality_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_n i_o know_v so_o many_o protestant_n of_o heavenly_a heart_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v judge_v and_o obedient_a life_n that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n in_o my_o most_o impartial_a judgement_n between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n in_o matter_n of_o holiness_n if_o this_o therefore_o be_v the_o proof_n of_o infallibility_n sure_a god_n will_v excuse_v i_o if_o i_o take_v england_n to_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o rome_n because_o he_o require_v i_o not_o to_o put_v out_o my_o eye_n nor_o to_o say_v the_o swan_n be_v black_a and_o the_o crow_n white_a because_o the_o pope_n shall_v say_v so_o before_o i_o and_o yet_o we_o still_o disclaim_v all_o pretence_n to_o such_o infallibility_n the_o three_o mark_n that_o knot_n bring_v be_v their_o suffering_n but_o 1._o sure_o the_o pope_n suffer_v but_o little_a in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o next_o let_v he_o look_v to_o himself_o how_o then_o do_v other_o man_n suffering_n prove_v he_o infallible_a 2._o do_v not_o the_o poor_a greek_a church_n and_o other_o christian_n under_o the_o turk_n suffer_v more_o than_o the_o romanist_n 3._o do_v they_o not_o make_v we_o suffer_v incomparable_o more_o than_o they_o be_v it_o not_o impudence_n almost_o inhuman_a after_o the_o murder_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o the_o albigenses_n waldenses_n bohemian_n after_o the_o massacre_n in_o france_n savoy_n ireland_n the_o burn_n in_o england_n the_o powder-plot_n after_o their_o bloody_a inquisition_n of_o so_o long_a continuance_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o kind_n to_o tell_v the_o remnant_n of_o their_o survive_a neighbour_n that_o their_o suffering_n prove_v they_o
a_o covenant_n then_o when_o paul_n say_v this_o rock_n be_v christ_n it_o must_v proclaim_v that_o all_o the_o israelite_n sense_n be_v deceive_v that_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a rock_n when_o a_o papist_n will_v confess_v that_o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o rock_n represent_v or_o signify_v christ_n as_o if_o among_o many_o image_n you_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v peter_n and_o this_o john_n and_o this_o paul_n this_o be_v plain_o to_o say_v this_o signify_v peter_n or_o represent_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o do_v not_o proclaim_v that_o deceit_n of_o sense_n bellarmine_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v call_v in_o 1_o cor._n 10._o &_o 11._o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n six_o time_n over_o as_o after_o the_o consecration_n and_o here_o his_o shift_a answer_n be_v that_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o scripture_n what_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v call_v a_o serpent_n and_o so_o here_o he_o plead_v a_o trope_n good_a still_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o bread_n six_o time_n near_o together_o after_o the_o consecration_n and_o it_o call_v it_o christ_n body_n once_o when_o his_o live_a body_n sit_v by_o now_o the_o question_n be_v which_o of_o these_o speech_n be_v tropical_a and_o we_o must_v believe_v bellarmine_n that_o the_o text_n which_o call_v it_o six_o time_n bread_n must_v needs_o be_v tropical_a and_o that_o which_o call_v it_o once_o christ_n body_n must_n need_v be_v understand_v without_o a_o trope_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o evidence_n they_o can_v bring_v that_o god_n have_v proclaim_v man_n sense_n to_o be_v fallible_a nay_o all_o that_o we_o need_v for_o our_o cause_n be_v but_o to_o take_v est_fw-la for_o significat_fw-la which_o be_v so_o common_a that_o one_o will_v think_v there_o shall_v not_o such_o unnatural_a absurdity_n be_v admit_v to_o avoid_v it_o as_o overthrow_v our_o humanity_n when_o we_o plead_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n and_o that_o a_o true_a body_n may_v be_v see_v and_o feel_v because_o christ_n bid_v they_o luk._n 24._o see_v and_o feel_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n etc._n etc._n bellarmine_n answer_v that_o sense_n be_v infallible_a in_o positives_n and_o therefore_o thence_o we_o may_v say_v this_n be_v a_o body_n because_o i_o see_v itself_o but_o not_o in_o negative_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v say_v this_n be_v not_o a_o body_n because_o i_o see_v it_o not_o and_o what_o need_v we_o more_o than_o that_o which_o be_v here_o grant_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n than_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o this_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n because_o we_o see_v feel_v smell_v taste_v it_o yet_o no_o doubt_n we_o may_v also_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o natural_a body_n because_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a or_o sensible_a so_o much_o for_o this_o second_o argument_n which_o i_o may_v thus_o with_o full_a advantage_n enforce_v if_o sense_n be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a but_o sense_n be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a therefore_o if_o sense_n be_v fallible_a the_o pope_n be_v fallible_a and_o all_o his_o church_n for_o their_o sense_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o follower_n be_v fallible_a ☜_o if_o sense_n be_v infallible_a the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v fallible_a because_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n take_v that_o for_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o they_o express_o say_v as_o the_o fide_fw-la to_o be_v believe_v be_v not_o either_o bread_n or_o wine_n argu._n 3_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_n council_n have_v err_v already_o then_o be_v they_o not_o infallible_a but_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretend_a general_n council_n have_v err_v already_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a as_o the_o first_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o no_o proof_n of_o his_o infallibility_n and_o the_o second_o from_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o mankind_n so_o the_o three_o be_v take_v from_o certain_a experience_n which_o be_v a_o medium_n so_o evident_a that_o their_o vain_a word_n and_o subtle_a evasion_n have_v the_o less_o force_n to_o elude_v or_o obscure_v it_o of_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o consequence_n there_o be_v no_o question_n can_v be_v make_v he_o that_o have_v err_v be_v not_o infallible_a all_o the_o doubt_n therefore_o be_v of_o the_o antecedent_n which_o have_v by_o unquestionable_a evidence_n of_o history_n be_v put_v out_o of_o doubt_n by_o our_o writer_n long_o ago_o i_o shall_v produce_v some_o few_o instance_n of_o many_o 14._o there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o forty_o pope_n who_o bellarmine_n himself_o take_v notice_n of_o as_o charge_v with_o error_n or_o heresy_n for_o who_o he_o frame_v such_o poor_a excuse_n that_o i_o shall_v think_v any_o impartial_a reader_n may_v receive_v satisfaction_n enough_o from_o bellarmine_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v too_o fallible_a yea_o that_o even_o judicial_o and_o in_o fundamental_o he_o may_v err_v do_v not_o pope_n liberius_n 9_o err_v judicial_o when_o he_o subscribe_v to_o the_o arrian_n confession_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n libenti_fw-la animo_fw-la suscepi_fw-la in_o nullo_n contradicens_fw-la which_o the_o father_n condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o to_o the_o council_n condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n as_o athanasius_n himself_o and_o many_o more_o witness_n do_v not_o pope_n vigilius_n err_v judicial_o when_o he_o condemn_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_n council_n for_o condemn_v dead_a heretic_n and_o when_o pope_n pelagius_n and_o gregory_n the_o first_o and_o adrian_z the_o first_o do_v all_o approve_v of_o the_o same_o sure_a one_o party_n of_o these_o pope_n err_v unless_o contradictorye_n may_v be_v true_a yea_o when_o pope_n vigilius_n do_v afterward_o revoke_v his_o own_o constitution_n occumenis_fw-la sure_o he_o err_v either_o in_o make_v or_o revoke_v it_o and_o so_o do_v pope_n paschalis_n when_o they_o give_v god_n thanks_o in_o open_a council_n that_o they_o hear_v the_o pope_n with_o his_o own_o mouth_n revok_v those_o grant_n which_o say_v they_o contain_v heresy_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v before_o make_v to_o the_o emperor_n 38._o though_o cajetans_n excuse_n be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v no_o heresy_n yet_o either_o the_o make_n or_o revoke_v be_v a_o error_n what_o will_v they_o invent_v at_o last_o to_o hide_v the_o nakedness_n of_o pope_n honorius_n who_o in_o two_o several_a general_n council_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o monothelite_n heretic_n which_o he_o judicial_o persuade_v sergius_n to_o when_o he_o seek_v his_o judgement_n stapleton_n and_o many_o more_o of_o they_o confess_v the_o full_a certainty_n of_o the_o council_n condemn_v he_o of_o heresy_n but_o forsooth_o they_o say_v the_o council_n do_v mistake_v the_o case_n 7._o it_o seem_v then_o either_o a_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n or_o a_o general_n council_n err_v moreover_o will_v any_o papist_n deny_v that_o pope_n stephen_n six_o and_o sergius_n err_v when_o 158._o they_o judicial_o decree_v that_o those_o shall_v be_v ordain_v again_o that_o be_v ordain_v by_o pope_n form●sus_n and_o of_o pope_n celestine_n error_n alphonsus_n a_o castro_n faith_n 4._o that_o he_o himself_o see_v it_o in_o the_o ancient_a decretal_n as_o his_o definition_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o he_o err_v as_o a_o private_a man_n and_o not_o as_o pope_n what_o can_v they_o say_v of_o pope_n john_n twenty_o two_o who_o deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o be_v admonish_v of_o his_o heresy_n by_o the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n as_o not_o only_a pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o joh._n gerson_n alphons_n a_o castro_n and_o other_o witness_n but_o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v also_o but_o he_o excuse_v he_o because_o that_o opinion_n be_v not_o there_o define_v against_o and_o therefore_o be_v no_o heresy_n see_v here_o 1._o whether_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o make_v themselves_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o religion_n when_o they_o please_v and_o that_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o one_o year_n that_o be_v none_o the_o year_n before_o so_o that_o the_o novelty_n and_o the_o mutability_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v thus_o by_o themselves_o confess_v 2._o see_v here_o that_o a_o point_n declare_v in_o scripture_n and_o hold_v by_o the_o former_a church_n be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o unless_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n 3._o see_v here_o what_o man_n bellarmine_n will_v make_v all_o the_o former_a pope_n to_o have_v be_v that_o have_v determine_v whether_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a or_o not_o 4._o chamier_n true_o note_v that_o bellarmine_n himself_o forgetful_o contradict_v himself_o and_o tell_v we_o elsewhere_o that_o innocent_a the_o three_o the_o ninteen_v pope_n before_o john_n twenty_o two_o have_v teach_v the_o contrary_a in_o express_a word_n i_o shall_v
because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v a_o lie_n they_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v be_v threaten_v to_o be_v give_v up_o to_o delusion_n and_o therefore_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o be_v infallible_a they_o that_o choose_v their_o own_o way_n god_n will_v choose_v their_o delusion_n isa_n 64.4_o there_o be_v no_o communion_n between_o light_n and_o darkness_n christ_n and_o belial_n therefore_o no_o infallibility_n with_o the_o child_n of_o belial_n of_o all_o man_n natural_o till_o christ_n illuminate_v they_o by_o special_a grace_n it_o be_v say_v in_o scripture_n that_o they_o be_v blind_a deceive_v liar_n of_o no_o understanding_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v 1_o cor._n 2.14_o prov._n 28.5_o rome_n 3.11_o prov._n 6.32_o &_o 9.4.10_o &_o 15.21_o &_o 7.7_o &_o 12.11_o 2_o pet._n 1.9_o 2_o tim._n 3.13_o tit._n 3.3_o it_o be_v only_o the_o elect_a that_o can_v be_v deceive_v even_o in_o the_o foundation_n mat._n 24.24_o none_o of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v understand_v but_o the_o wise_a shall_v understand_v dan._n 12.10_o they_o be_v threaten_v to_o be_v give_v over_o to_o blindness_n that_o they_o may_v not_o understand_v isa_n 6.9.10_o act._n 28.26_o 27_o mar._n 4.12_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o begin_n of_o wisdom_n psal_n 111.10_o god_n promise_v to_o teach_v the_o humble_a psal_n 25._o but_o the_o proud_a he_o still_o resist_v when_o he_o give_v to_o the_o humble_a his_o grace_n 1_o pet._n 5.5_o jam._n 4.6_o and_o not_o only_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o their_o tongue_n be_v deceitful_a even_o when_o they_o know_v the_o truth_n so_o that_o a_o wicked_a pope_n may_v lie_v and_o deceive_v psal_n 36.3_o prov._n 12.5_o mar._n 7.22_o rom._n 3.13_o i_o confess_v that_o a_o wicked_a man_n may_v have_v some_o kind_n of_o superficial_a knowledge_n of_o all_o those_o doctrine_n dis-junct_o at_o least_o which_o be_v know_v to_o true_a believer_n but_o as_o he_o have_v no_o solid_a knowledge_n of_o they_o so_o he_o have_v no_o promise_n or_o assurance_n of_o infallibility_n in_o that_o which_o he_o be_v capable_a of_o know_v nor_o be_v it_o so_o like_a that_o a_o blind_a deceitful_a man_n shall_v be_v universal_o orthodox_n and_o for_o the_o minor_a that_o many_o pope_n have_v be_v notorious_o wicked_a i_o need_v not_o prove_v it_o while_o their_o own_o historian_n and_o disputer_n too_o do_v so_o common_o confess_v it_o it_o be_v well_o know_v what_o wickedness_n the_o council_n that_o depose_v they_o charge_v upon_o some_o and_o what_o poison_v and_o other_o murder_n simony_n conjuration_n incest_n common_a adultery_n and_o other_o wickedness_n be_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o their_o life_n and_o other_o historian_n charge_v on_o so_o many_o more_o that_o i_o shall_v but_o trouble_v the_o weary_a reader_n to_o no_o purpose_n to_o cite_v they_o read_v the_o life_n of_o pope_n sylvester_n the_o witch_n the_o 2._o alexander_n the_o 3._o and_o the_o 6._o john_n 13._o and_o the_o 22._o and_o the_o 23._o gregory_n the_o 7._o vrbane_n the_o 7._o etc._n etc._n in_o platina_n luitprandus_fw-la fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la martinus_n polonus_n etc._n etc._n ticinus_n hist_o li._n 6._o of_o 17_o john_n 13._o show_n that_o his_o sin_n be_v prove_v in_o council_n that_o he_o ravish_v and_o commit_v filthiness_n with_o maid_n widow_n and_o wife_n at_o the_o apostolic_a door_n commit_v many_o murder_n drink_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o at_o dice_n ask_v help_v of_o jupiter_n and_o venus_n and_o at_o last_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o act_n of_o adultery_n see_v of_o sylvester_n 2._o fascic_fw-la temp_n a_o 1004._o martin_n polonus_n anno._n 1007._o platin._n in_o ejus_fw-la vita_fw-la of_o boniface_n the_o 7._o see_v baronius_n himself_o anno_o 985._o n._n 1._o of_o alexander_n the_o 6._o see_v guicciardine_n hiss_v li._n 1._o and_o onuphrius_n vit_fw-fr alex._n 6._o but_o i_o will_v name_v no_o more_o argu._n 15._o other_o bishop_n and_o church_n who_o have_v as_o good_a a_o pretence_n to_o plead_v for_o their_o infallibility_n as_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v yet_o general_o acknowledge_v fallible_a even_o by_o themselves_o and_o by_o the_o papist_n therefore_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n also_o be_v fallible_a all_o that_o be_v doubtful_a be_v whether_o any_o other_o church_n or_o bishop_n have_v as_o fair_a a_o plea_n for_o infallibility_n as_o the_o roman_a which_o i_o prove_v thus_o 1._o the_o plea_n of_o the_o romanist_n be_v that_o their_o bishop_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o a_o apostle_n who_o be_v infallible_a and_o so_o the_o promise_v belong_v to_o he_o do_v belong_v also_o to_o his_o successor_n and_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v the_o same_o plea_n for_o all_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v on_o they_o be_v infallible_a as_o well_o as_o peter_n and_o therefore_o their_o successor_n have_v as_o fair_a a_o plea_n as_o peter_n successor_n obj._n but_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a promise_n make_v to_o the_o rest_n for_o their_o successor_n stability_n as_o be_v to_o peter_n answ_n 1._o there_o can_v no_o great_a a_o promise_n to_o peter_n successor_n be_v show_v then_o be_v make_v mat._n 28.29_o to_o they_o all_o lo_n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o the_o papist_n according_a to_o their_o new_a fundamental_o must_v not_o plead_v scripture_n promise_n for_o their_o infallibility_n for_o they_o say_v their_o infallibility_n be_v in_o order_n first_o know_v evidence_v and_o to_o be_v prove_v before_o it_o be_v know_v that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n 2._o the_o plea_n of_o the_o romanist_n for_o their_o pope_n infallibility_n be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n may_v as_o well_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n and_o yet_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o infallibility_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n that_o history_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n also_o yea_o and_o that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n before_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o antioch_n be_v undoubted_o the_o ancient_a church_n what_o reason_n then_o can_v the_o papist_n give_v why_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n may_v not_o as_o well_o plead_v that_o he_o be_v peter_n successor_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n unless_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o peter_n do_v by_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n bequeath_v the_o honour_n of_o succession_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n to_o rome_n only_o which_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o that_o i_o can_v find_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v otherwise_o if_o one_o must_v needs_o be_v prefer_v why_o shall_v not_o the_o elder_a unless_o they_o be_v disinherit_v and_o the_o young_a have_v the_o blessing_n which_o must_v be_v prove_v whence_o be_v it_o but_o from_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o antiquity_n that_o antioch_n jerusalem_n alexandria_n and_o rome_n shall_v be_v prefer_v as_o patriarchates_n before_o all_o other_o church_n and_o if_o antiquity_n be_v a_o good_a reason_n for_o that_o then_o why_o shall_v not_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n on_o the_o same_o account_n be_v prefer_v before_o rome_n see_v its_o beyond_o all_o doubt_n that_o they_o be_v both_o the_o more_o ancient_a church_n and_o antioch_n the_o more_o ancient_a seat_n of_o peter_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o they_o that_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o either_o so_o that_o its_o clear_a that_o other_o church_n have_v as_o much_o or_o more_o to_o say_v for_o infallibility_n than_o rome_n who_o yet_o make_v no_o prentence_n to_o it_o argu._n 16._o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v not_o infallible_a till_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v on_o they_o nor_o by_o any_o other_o help_n without_o the_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o before_o they_o understand_v not_o that_o christ_n must_v die_v rise_v and_o ascend_v till_o it_o be_v do_v but_o peter_n mat._n 16.20_o dissuade_v he_o from_o suffer_a therefore_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o may_v plead_v succession_n from_o peter_n can_v expect_v more_o than_o peter_n himself_o have_v and_o therefore_o can_v expect_v his_o infallibility_n without_o his_o spirit_n and_o inspiration_n and_o therefore_o those_o pope_n that_o have_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o inspiration_n as_o peter_n have_v can_v pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a as_o his_o
successor_n for_o they_o must_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o cause_n if_o they_o will_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o effect_n argu._n 17._o if_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a than_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a but_o the_o papist_n say_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a therefore_o according_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a the_o argument_n be_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la and_o the_o antecedent_n their_o own_o all_o the_o doubt_n be_v of_o the_o consequence_n which_o i_o prove_v thus_o either_o it_o be_v the_o real_a or_o representative_a body_n which_o they_o must_v call_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o both_o these_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n therefore_o 1._o for_o the_o real_a no_o man_n can_v possible_o know_v all_o their_o mind_n nor_o ever_o expect_v that_o they_o shall_v in_o this_o life_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o major_a part_n that_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n to_o as_o its_o usual_a in_o all_o such_o body_n or_o assembly_n now_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n be_v and_o have_v be_v against_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n that_o it_o be_v so_o now_o be_v well_o know_v see_v all_o the_o greek_n abassin_n armenian_n reform_v and_o other_o church_n be_v far_o more_o than_o the_o papist_n 2._o and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v so_o former_o the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v i_o will_v note_v at_o this_o time_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o sober_a of_o they_o melch._n canus_n loc._n theol._n li._n 6._o cap._n 7._o fol._n mihi_fw-la 201._o pugnatum_fw-la est_fw-la siquidem_fw-la uchementer_fw-la non_fw-la a_o graecis_fw-la solum_fw-la sed_fw-la ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la plerisque_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la apiscopis_fw-la ut_fw-la roman●_n ecclesiae_fw-la privilegium_fw-la labefactaretur_fw-la atque_fw-la habebant_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la illi_fw-la quidem_fw-la &_o imperatorum_fw-la arma_fw-la &_o majorem_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la numerum_fw-la nunquam_fw-la tamen_fw-la efficere_fw-la potuerunt_fw-la ut_fw-la unius_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la potestatem_fw-la abrogarent_fw-la that_o be_v not_o only_o the_o greek_n ☜_o but_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v vehement_o fight_v to_o destroy_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v on_o their_o side_n both_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v never_o prevail_v to_o abrogate_v the_o power_n of_o one_o pope_n of_o rome_n mark_v here_o that_o it_o be_v only_a success_n that_o he_o plead_v but_o confess_v that_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n beside_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n be_v against_o the_o roman_a privilege_n as_o they_o call_v they_o &_o the_o pope_n power_n so_o that_o by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v the_o conscience_n and_o modesty_n of_o these_o man_n that_o not_o only_o call_v themselves_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o if_o all_o other_o beside_o they_o be_v some_o inconsiderable_a parcel_n but_o also_o will_v make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o before_o luther_n time_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o that_o deny_v their_o pretend_a power_n we_o may_v see_v from_o themselves_o then_o where_o our_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n so_o far_o as_o christian_n oppose_v the_o romish_a usurpation_n be_v our_o church_n even_o most_o of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n and_o therefore_o this_o may_v stop_v their_o mouth_n that_o use_v to_o call_v out_o to_o we_o for_o a_o catalogue_n of_o their_o name_n will_v they_o have_v the_o name_n of_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n 2._o and_o then_o for_o the_o representative_a church_n if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n it_o must_v be_v a_o general_n council_n and_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o many_o such_o as_o themselves_o call_v general_a council_n have_v contradict_v the_o pope_n depose_v and_o condemn_v he_o this_o bellarmine_n canus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o do_v confess_v and_o therefore_o i_o need_v not_o say_v more_o to_o prove_v it_o argu._n 18._o that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v be_v prove_v full_o 3._o both_o by_o the_o error_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o by_o their_o contradict_v one_o another_o it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v that_o the_o arrian_n have_v as_o general_a council_n as_o most_o ever_o the_o orthodox_n have_v have_v bellarmine_n and_o canus_n give_v more_o instance_n of_o err_a council_n than_o can_v be_v answer_v by_o the_o contrary_n mind_v 17._o pope_n adrian_n and_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o he_o confirm_v decree_n for_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n determine_v the_o contrary_a against_o the_o say_a council_n of_o nice_a though_o the_o pope_n legate_n contradict_v they_o so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o paris_n anno_fw-la 825._o 1._o who_o examine_v judge_v and_o reprehend_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o and_o pope_n adrian's_n confirmation_n and_o defence_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o bellarmine_n say_v they_o judge_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n their_o word_n be_v recite_v by_o bellarmine_n append._n de_fw-fr imag._n c._n 3._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 825._o n._n 5._o it_o be_v common_o know_v how_o nazianzen_n complain_v that_o he_o never_o yet_o see_v a_o council_n have_v a_o good_a end_n but_o thing_n be_v make_v worse_o by_o it_o and_o not_o better_o and_o hierom_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la galat._n say_v that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n against_o which_o if_o council_n determine_v any_o thing_n i_o account_v it_o wicked_a instance_n of_o the_o error_n of_o council_n we_o have_v too_o many_o etc._n the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n confirm_v by_o leo_n the_o four_o and_o by_o the_o first_o of_o nice_a as_o say_v the_o council_n of_o florence_n sess_v 7._o condemn_v second_o marriage_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 7._o though_o bellarmine_n vain_o excuse_v they_o by_o plain_a force_v their_o word_n the_o four_o council_n at_o carthage_n forbid_v bishop_n to_o read_v the_o gentile_n book_n which_o yet_o the_o apostle_n make_v use_v of_o and_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o since_o allow_v the_o council_n of_o toletane_a 1._o ordain_v that_o he_o wh●_n instead_o of_o a_o wife_n have_v a_o concubine_n shall_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o communion_n which_o bellarmine_n also_o false_o excuse_v the_o six_o general_n council_n at_o constantinople_n have_v many_o error_n which_o bellarmine_n confess_v and_o lay_v the_o cause_n on_o this_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o pope_n authority_n whereas_o pope_n adrian_n approve_v they_o liborum_fw-la and_o the_o seven_o council_n judge_v they_o genuine_a adrian_n say_v se_fw-la sextam_fw-la synodum_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la canonibus_fw-la recipere_fw-la he_o receive_v the_o six_o synod_n with_o all_o its_o canon_n and_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v divine_a the_o council_n at_o constance_n decree_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n at_o the_o lateran_n under_o julius_n 2._o and_o leo_fw-la 10._o decree_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o general_n council_n sess_z 11._o the_o council_n of_o calcedone_n abrogate_a the_o act_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o decree_v the_o contrary_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v notorious_o erroneous_a and_o contradict_v the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n and_o carthag_n 3._o about_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o number_n of_o their_o contradiction_n and_o error_n be_v too_o great_a for_o i_o here_o to_o recite_v many_o of_o our_o writer_n against_o the_o papist_n give_v you_o large_a catalogue_n and_o full_a proof_n of_o they_o see_v doctor_n sutline_v li._n 2._o the_o council_n cap._n 1._o what_o gregor_n nazianz._n and_o hierome_n say_v of_o they_o i_o touch_v before_o hilary_n li._n de_fw-la synodis_fw-la exclaim_v against_o the_o error_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o council_n of_o syrmium_fw-la and_o ancyra_n augustine_n say_v li._n 3_o cont_n maximni_fw-la c._n 14._o nec_fw-la ego_fw-la nicenum_n nec_fw-la tu_fw-la debes_fw-la ariminense_n ta●quam_fw-la praejudicaturus_fw-la profere_fw-la concilium_fw-la nec_fw-la ego_fw-la huius_fw-la authoritate_fw-la nec_fw-la tu_fw-la illius_fw-la detinenis_fw-la he_o say_v also_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr baptis_n concilia_fw-la plenaria_fw-la priora_fw-la a_o posterioribus_fw-la emendari_fw-la that_o be_v former_a council_n that_o be_v full_o have_v be_v mend_v by_o late_a bellarmine_n deceitful_a shift_a answer_n to_o these_o testimony_n be_v not_o worth_a the_o repeat_n isidore_n say_v 1._o quotiescunque_fw-la in_o gestis_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la discors_fw-la st●tentia_fw-la invenitur_fw-la illius_fw-la
thousand_o year_n be_v ever_o a_o true_a general_n council_n in_o the_o world_n the_o popish_a doctor_n as_o doctor_n holden_n the_o resolut_a fid_fw-we li._n 1._o cap._n 9_o pag._n 156._o say_v that_o it_o must_v arise_v to_o that_o degree_n of_o universality_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v any_o suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n and_o combine_a faction_n that_o so_o every_o prudent_a man_n may_v be_v able_a hearty_o to_o say_v that_o the_o assembly_n be_v true_o general_n and_o be_v it_o so_o when_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o swear_a oblige_a vassal_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o greek_n ethiopian_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n and_o most_o of_o the_o church_n be_v absent_a and_o when_o it_o be_v a_o know_a combination_n to_o promote_v their_o own_o espouse_a cause_n quest_n 12._o and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o divine_a faith_n extinct_a and_o lose_v when_o there_o be_v no_o general_n council_n it_o may_v be_v we_o may_v have_v no_o general_n council_n of_o a_o hundred_o or_o six_o hundred_o or_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o have_v we_o no_o church_n then_o or_o no_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o faith_n if_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v certain_a by_o the_o determination_n of_o former_a council_n than_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v past_a and_o go_v of_o which_o i_o move_v the_o doubt_n before_o and_o the_o canon_n of_o these_o we_o can_v read_v and_o understand_v as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n but_o when_o we_o appeal_v to_o former_a council_n and_o age_n they_o will_v hold_v we_o to_o the_o present_a church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v their_o own_o and_o so_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n q._n 13_o i_o will_v know_v also_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o general_n council_n that_o the_o first_o church_n believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n do_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n believe_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o so_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o receive_v they_o by_o a_o undoubted_a messenger_n from_o paul_n or_o do_v they_o stay_v till_o they_o have_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o general_n council_n or_o of_o all_o the_o church_n indeed_o they_o make_v use_v of_o the_o intervening_a humane_a but_o certain_a testimony_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o messenger_n or_o bearer_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o writing_n of_o paul_n indeed_o and_o so_o we_o still_o maintain_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o credible_a humane_a testimony_n that_o these_o write_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n hand_n but_o tychicus_n or_o trophimus_n or_o timothy_n or_o ones●mus_n be_v not_o a_o general_n council_n nor_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o doubtless_o those_o epistle_n that_o be_v write_v to_o each_o particular_a church_n be_v receive_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o particular_a church_n as_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o a_o apostle_n and_o not_o that_o the_o particular_a receive_v it_o from_o the_o universal_a how_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n know_v that_o those_o epistle_n be_v write_v by_o paul_n to_o titus_n timothy_n philemon_n to_o the_o ephesian_n etc._n etc._n but_o on_o the_o report_n of_o the_o person_n and_o church_n to_o who_o they_o be_v write_v or_o else_o of_o those_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n do_v communicate_v a_o copy_n of_o they_o quest_n 14._o and_o how_o do_v all_o the_o church_n know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a when_o there_o have_v be_v no_o general_n council_n to_o determine_v the_o business_n quest_n 15._o dare_v a_o papist_n undertake_v to_o justify_v at_o god_n judgement_n all_o that_o part_n of_o the_o unbelieve_a world_n for_o not_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o have_v see_v or_o hear_v it_o and_o have_v all_o other_o testimony_n of_o it_o but_o never_o know_v of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v none_o of_o ●hese_n perish_v for_o this_o unbelief_n quest_n 16._o and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n that_o they_o call_v ●he_v church_n and_o take_v it_o to_o be_v this_o infallible_a judge_n ●_o then_o demand_n how_o know_v the_o pope_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n or_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v ●rue_a the_o like_a also_o i_o ask_v of_o a_o council_n how_o do_v that_o council_n know_v it_o themselves_o from_o who_o we_o must_v know_v it_o either_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n must_v believe_v it_o because_o they_o first_o believe_v themselves_o and_o so_o take_v it_o on_o their_o own_o word_n or_o else_o on_o the_o word_n of_o some_o other_o ●f_n the_o former_a than_o they_o believe_v it_o because_o they_o believe_v ●t_a then_o they_o be_v the_o original_n of_o their_o own_o belief_n and_o believe_v themselves_o first_o and_o then_o will_v have_v all_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v they_o and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v ●o_o arrogant_a as_o to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o church_n but_o also_o so_o impudent_a and_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o believe_v themselves_o without_o reason_n and_o to_o expect_v that_o all_o other_o shall_v do_v so_o too_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o themselves_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n believe_v the_o scripture_n from_o who_o then_o be_v it_o not_o from_o any_o other_o of_o the_o present_a church_n doubtless_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v from_o the_o former_a church_n and_o if_o so_o 1._o have_v not_o we_o the_o same_o mean_n to_o know_v that_o the_o former_a church_n believe_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v and_o therefore_o may_v believe_v it_o without_o recourse_n to_o he_o and_o as_o infallible_o as_o he_o 2._o and_o then_o it_o seem_v that_o accord_v to_o their_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n receive_v not_o their_o faith_n or_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o same_o ground_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n must_v do_v so_o that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o twofold_a foundation_n of_o her_o faith_n whereof_o one_o be_v necessary_a only_o to_o one_o part_n and_o not_o to_o the_o other_o that_o be_v all_z the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n must_v believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n because_o the_o present_a pope_n or_o council_n say_v so_o have_v first_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n but_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n themselves_o need_v not_o any_o such_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o this_o distinction_n be_v not_o make_v between_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o clergy_n in_o general_a but_o even_o the_o clergy_n themselves_o out_o of_o council_n or_o who_o never_o be_v of_o the_o council_n which_o sure_o be_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o for_o one_o must_v thu●_n differ_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n this_o be_v another_o taste_n of_o the_o famous_a roman_a unity_n paul_n say_v there_o be_v one_o faith_n b●●_n if_o two_o divide_a foundation_n or_o reason_n of_o belie●_n do_v make_v two_o belief_n sure_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hat●_n two_o quest_n 17._o do_v you_o believe_v that_o the_o lord_n jes●_n christ_n understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o papal_a authority_n and_o infallibility_n when_o he_o so_o chide_v his_o apostle_n fo●_n strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o tell_v they_o so_o express_o that_o the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n exercise_v authority_n over_o they_o and_o be_v call_v gracious_a lord_n but_o with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o when_o he_o set_v before_o they_o a_o little_a child_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o that_o will_v be_v great_a among_o they_o must_v be_v as_o that_o child_n that_o be_v that_o humility_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o must_v strive_v to_o be_v great_a or_o excel_v in_o and_o so_o to_o serve_v one_o another_o in_o love_n also_o when_o he_o command_v they_o to_o call_v no_o man_n on_o earth_n father_n or_o master_n that_o be_v of_o their_o faith_n do_v ever_o christ_n direct_v the_o world_n to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n or_o not_o quest_n 18._o where_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n when_o the_o pope_n be_v dead_a and_o when_o there_o be_v three_o or_o four_o at_o a_o time_n and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o interruption_n by_o schism_n thirty_o year_n together_o as_o it_o be_v know_v there_o have_v be_v have_v not_o the_o church_n then_o lose_v her_o faith_n by_o lose_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o or_o
whether_o then_o must_v poor_a pagan_n have_v recourse_n to_o know_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o infallibility_n survive_v in_o other_o pastor_n than_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o be_v infallible_a but_o other_o as_o well_o as_o he_o and_o be_v not_o the_o church_n faith_n resolve_v into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o woman_n in_o pope_n joane_v day_n i_o know_v the_o shift_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o onuphrius_n to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o story_n of_o pope_n joan_n be_v but_o a_o fable_n florimondus_fw-la remondus_fw-la be_v common_a on_o this_o subject_n but_o the_o case_n be_v out_o of_o question_n thus_o far_o that_o we_o have_v near_o fifty_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n especial_o old_a historian_n that_o give_v we_o the_o history_n of_o this_o pope_n joan_n as_o platina_n in_o vit_fw-mi joh._n 8._o sabellicus_n enead_n l._n 1._o antoninus_n archbishop_n of_o florence_n part_n 2._o li._n 16._o chalcondyla_fw-fr li._n 6._o marianus_n scotus_n martinus_n polonus_n fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la nauclerus_fw-la volaterane_n textor_n caryon_n sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la mat._n palmerius_n massaeus_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o marvel_v why_o the_o papist_n shall_v be_v so_o industrious_a in_o refel_v it_o as_o if_o their_o cause_n lie_v more_o on_o this_o then_o other_o thing_n if_o a_o conjurer_n a_o common_a whoremonger_n a_o murderer_n a_o simonist_n a_o heretic_n may_v be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o faith_n why_o may_v not_o a_o woman_n have_v christ_n lay_v more_o on_o the_o sex_n then_o on_o all_o these_o special_o if_o she_o have_v but_o keep_v herself_o honest_a i_o shall_v have_v think_v joan_n have_v be_v better_a than_o john_n the_o 22._o or_o 23._o and_o many_o another_o that_o yet_o be_v of_o the_o more_o worthy_a gender_n quest_n 19_o and_o further_o i_o will_v know_v if_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v consume_v with_o fire_n or_o the_o popedom_n remove_v from_o that_o sea_n which_o bellarmine_n confess_v it_o be_v not_o impossile_a to_o be_v do_v where_o then_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o romish_a faith_n if_o they_o say_v that_o this_o can_v never_o be_v and_o that_o christ_n promise_n imply_v the_o preservation_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n i_o answer_v 1._o it_o will_v be_v long_o before_o they_o will_v give_v we_o any_o proof_n of_o that_o 2._o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v the_o contrary_n 3._o let_v the_o end_n determine_v it_o but_o if_o they_o say_v that_o infallibility_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o place_n but_o to_o the_o person_n who_o shall_v be_v peter_n successor_n i_o answer_v we_o think_v hitherto_o that_o to_o be_v peter_n successor_n and_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v all_o one_o with_o they_o if_o another_o man_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v peter_n successor_n then_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v who_o have_v succeed_v he_o all_o this_o while_n why_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n jerusalem_n ephesus_n or_o other_o place_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pope_n special_o why_o not_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o inherit_v his_o first_o chair_n i_o doubt_v if_o rome_n be_v extinct_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n or_o cullen_n or_o vienna_n or_o rheims_n or_o paris_n or_o any_o other_o shall_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o infallible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o the_o old_a patriarch_n but_o their_o neighbour_n bishop_n will_v much_o contradict_v it_o and_o the_o world_n will_v be_v at_o a_o great_a loss_n to_o find_v the_o popish_a faith_n or_o infallible_a head_n quest_n 20._o last_o i_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o papist_n that_o have_v any_o conscience_n leave_v and_o have_v read_v the_o father_n or_o history_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o curche_n in_o those_o time_n do_v believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o gospel_n on_o the_o credit_n of_o peter_n or_o be_v they_o send_v by_o he_o or_o do_v they_o receive_v their_o authority_n from_o he_o do_v they_o find_v that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n or_o any_o follow_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n do_v take_v such_o a_o course_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o faith_n as_o first_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o clergy_n be_v infallible_a and_o therefore_o to_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n or_o christian_a faith_n because_o they_o say_v its_o true_a be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o learned_a papist_n can_v serious_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o ancient_a way_n of_o believe_v do_v they_o think_v in_o good_a sadness_n that_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n by_o this_o mean_n sure_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o distract_v by_o their_o prejudice_n and_o faction_n do_v they_o read_v in_o clemens_n rom._n or_o alexandrin_n in_o ignatius_n justin_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n or_o any_o other_o of_o those_o time_n that_o the_o preacher_n that_o go_v abroad_o the_o world_n to_o persuade_v man_n to_o christianity_n do_v ever_o use_v this_o popish_a medium_fw-la or_o go_v this_o way_n to_o work_v do_v they_o first_o preach_v the_o pope_n and_o roman_a church_n before_o they_o preach_v christ_n or_o scripture_n do_v they_o first_o preach_v man_n into_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o then_o bring_v they_o to_o christ_n or_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o o_o that_o these_o man_n will_v but_o show_v we_o in_o what_o history_n we_o may_v find_v the_o report_n of_o this_o way_n of_o preach_v or_o tell_v we_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v by_o this_o argument_n how_o many_o and_o large_a oration_n apology_n and_o other_o discourse_n do_v we_o find_v in_o the_o father_n write_n for_o the_o christian_a faith_n to_o convince_v the_o unbelieving_a world_n in_o clem_n alexand._n tertullian_n origen_n athenagoras_n tatianus_n minutius_n faelix_fw-la arnobius_n lactantius_n greg_n nazianz._n nissen_n athanasius_n basil_n eusebius_n cyril_n alexandr_n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o and_o can_v any_o man_n of_o brain_n imagine_v that_o if_o the_o infallibility_n ●ea_n or_o but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v the_o scripture_n or_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v receive_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o that_o church_n that_o all_o these_o father_n and_o other_o defender_n and_o propagator_n of_o the_o faith_n will_v have_v quite_o forget_v and_o leave_v out_o this_o great_a and_o necessary_a point_n what!_o will_v all_o the_o preacher_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n overlook_v and_o omit_v the_o very_a foundation_n into_o which_o all_o man_n faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v undoubted_o if_o this_o have_v be_v then_o think_v to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o papist_n now_o teach_v we_o shall_v have_v have_v the_o first_o part_n and_o a_o great_a if_o not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o all_o tho●e_a apology_n and_o discourse_n lay_v out_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o roman_a infallibility_n what_o man_n will_v go_v to_o evince_v a_o whole_a system_a of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o quite_o forget_v that_o medium_n by_o which_o only_o it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v prove_v will_v not_o this_o have_v find_v one_o place_n at_o least_o if_o not_o the_o chief_a among_o eusebius_n his_o preparation_n or_o demonstration_n where_o be_v there_o ever_o in_o all_o antiquity_n find_v such_o a_o argument_n as_o this_o to_o convince_v a_o unbeliever_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n determine_v be_v true_a but_o they_o do_v determine_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o christianity_n be_v the_o right_a religion_n therefore_o this_o be_v true_a nay_o further_o consider_v if_o this_o kind_n of_o argue_v have_v be_v then_o use_v may_v not_o any_o man_n see_v that_o have_v not_o renounce_v his_o wit_n that_o the_o heathen_n will_v have_v sore_o stick_v at_o the_o major_a proposition_n and_o that_o it_o will_v have_v meet_v with_o so_o many_o objection_n and_o contradiction_n from_o they_o that_o sure_o we_o shall_v have_v find_v some_o of_o they_o remember_v to_o posterity_n do_v julian_n never_o stick_v at_o this_o very_a principle_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o roman_a infallibility_n who_o stick_v at_o so_o many_o thing_n in_o the_o faith_n itself_o or_o have_v cyril_n alexandr_n and_o other_o quite_o forget_v to_o mention_v these_o among_o the_o rest_n
of_o his_o contradiction_n do_v it_o never_o come_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o celsus_n porphyry_n or_o any_o other_o unbeliever_n that_o we_o read_v of_o to_o doubt_v of_o and_o object_n against_o this_o fundamental_a infallibility_n o_o what_o a_o incredible_a thing_n be_v this_o yea_o and_o yet_o the_o more_o incredible_a will_v it_o appear_v if_o you_o consider_v that_o all_o the_o whole_a cause_n between_o the_o christian_n and_o the_o infidel_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a conceit_n must_v depend_v upon_o this_o one_o point_n of_o their_o infallibility_n for_o what_o man_n will_v be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o contradict_v the_o church_n if_o he_o once_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a can_v they_o think_v that_o all_o the_o learned_a heathen_n be_v such_o fool_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v therefore_o that_o their_o first_o stop_n must_v be_v at_o the_o major_a proposition_n even_o at_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o therefore_o certain_o their_o most_o objection_n will_v have_v be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a doctor_n labour_n will_v have_v be_v in_o the_o defend_n of_o it_o but_o that_o its_o certain_a they_o then_o believe_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o the_o church_n be_v at_o that_o time_n utter_o unacquainted_a with_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o present_a romish_a faith_n moreover_o if_o this_o popish_a foundation_n have_v be_v then_o know_v do_v you_o think_v that_o the_o father_n will_v not_o have_v appeal_v to_o rome_n for_o a_o decision_n of_o all_o their_o perplex_v controversy_n what_o ready_a way_n to_o have_v silence_v all_o gainsayers_a and_o end_v all_o strife_n and_o to_o have_v save_v the_o labour_n of_o so_o many_o volume_n then_o to_o have_v bestow_v their_o pain_n with_o all_o dissenter_n upon_o this_o one_o point_n alone_o that_o rome_n be_v infallible_a and_o then_o have_v send_v they_o thither_o for_o satisfaction_n in_o all_o the_o rest_n common_a reason_n must_v needs_o have_v tell_v man_n of_o such_o principle_n that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n but_o do_v we_o find_v that_o this_o way_n be_v take_v how_o come_v we_o then_o to_o have_v so_o many_o volume_n of_o the_o father_n controversal_a write_n and_o not_o one_o book_n or_o chapter_n or_o leaf_n or_o line_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a infallibility_n and_o because_o the_o order_n of_o our_o discourse_n have_v bring_v we_o up_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n i_o shall_v here_o give_v you_o a_o brief_a taste_n of_o their_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n and_o so_o conclude_v this_o argumentation_n in_o the_o contention_n about_o easter_n day_n between_o the_o eastern_a &_o western_a church_n 198._o polycrates_n with_o the_o asian_a bishop_n resist_v the_o pope_n judicial_a determination_n anno_fw-la 198._o and_o therefore_o doubtless_o they_o believe_v not_o his_o infallibility_n nor_o universal_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o first_o that_o subscribe_v be_v eustathius_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n before_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n theodor._n li._n 1._o c._n 7._o so_o do_v hosius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n in_o spain_n as_o athanas_n apolog._n 2._o in_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n the_o pope_n legate_n have_v the_o last_o place_n conc._n afric_n 9_o can._n 100_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v 157._o subscribe_v before_o philip_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n menna_n their_o bishop_n be_v precedent_n evangri_n l._n 4._o c._n 38._o and_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o then_o so_o much_o as_o the_o presidency_n how_o much_o less_o a_o universal_a jurisdiction_n with_o infallibility_n when_o stephen_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n determine_v judicial_o against_o rebaptise_v heretic_n and_o excommunicate_v firmilianus_n for_o not_o assent_v and_o write_v to_o cyprian_a about_o it_o what_o do_v they_o do_v do_v they_o either_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o infallible_a or_o obey_v he_o as_o their_o universal_a ruler_n no_o but_o cyprian_a firmilian_a with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n do_v unanimous_o join_v against_o the_o pope_n decree_n i_o will_v fain_o know_v by_o what_o spectacle_n the_o papist_n can_v read_v these_o word_n of_o 229._o cyprian_n to_o find_v out_o their_o infallibility_n in_o they_o in_o his_o epist_n 74._o ad_fw-la pempeium_n he_o say_v thus_o i_o have_v send_v a_o copy_n of_o our_o brother_n stephen_n letter_n which_o when_o you_o read_v you_o will_v see_v his_o error_n more_o and_o more_o who_o endeavour_v to_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o heretic_n against_o the_o christian_n and_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o among_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v either_o proud_o or_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o contrary_a to_o himself_o and_o ignorant_o and_o unadvised_o he_o add_v etc._n etc._n here_o mention_v pope_n stephens_n plead_v of_o tradition_n he_o say_v whence_o be_v that_o tradition_n be_v it_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o gospel_n come_v it_o from_o the_o command_n and_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o that_o we_o must_v do_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v god_n testify_v and_o propound_v to_o joshua_n say_v let_v not_o this_o book_n of_o the_o law_n depart_v out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n etc._n etc._n if_o therefore_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n epistle_n or_o in_o the_o act_n then_o let_v this_o divine_a and_o holy_a tradition_n be_v observe_v what_o obstinacy_n be_v this_o and_o what_o presumption_n to_o prefer_v humane_a tradition_n before_o divine_a appointment_n and_o not_o to_o consider_v that_o god_n be_v angry_a and_o offend_v as_o oft_o as_o humane_a tradition_n do_v lose_v or_o pass_v by_o the_o command_n of_o god_n as_o isaiah_n say_v this_o people_n honour_v i_o with_o their_o lip_n but_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o commendement_n of_o man_n and_o as_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n reprove_v they_o you_o reject_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o establish_v your_o tradition_n so_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 6.3_o if_o any_o teach_v otherwise_o and_o rest_v not_o in_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o doctrine_n he_o be_v proud_a or_o lift_v up_o with_o stupidity_n know_v nothing_o from_o such_o we_o must_v depart_v the_o custom_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o with_o some_o ought_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o truth_n from_o prevail_v and_o overcome_v for_o custom_n without_o truth_n be_v but_o antiquity_n of_o error_n therefore_o leave_v error_n let_v we_o follow_v truth_n it_o be_v through_o a_o study_n of_o presumption_n and_o contumacy_n that_o a_o man_n will_v rather_o defend_v his_o own_o wicked_a and_o false_a opinion_n than_o consent_n to_o another_o that_n be_v right_a and_o true_a paul_n therefore_o say_v that_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v no_o quarrel_n but_o mild_a and_o teachable_a for_o a_o bishop_n must_v not_o only_o teach_v but_o be_v teach_v and_o there_o be_v a_o speedy_a way_n for_o religious_a and_o simple_a mind_n to_o lay_v down_o error_n and_o to_o find_v and_o disclose_v the_o truth_n for_o if_o we_o return_v to_o scripture_n the_o head_n and_o original_a of_o god_n tradition_n humane_a error_n cease_v and_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o cloudy_a darkness_n it_o open_v in_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n if_o the_o water_n pipe_n be_v stop_v do_v we_o not_o run_v to_o the_o fountain_n to_o see_v what_o be_v the_o matter_n so_o now_o must_v the_o priest_n of_o god_n that_o keep_v his_o commandment_n that_o if_o in_o any_o point_n truth_n have_v change_v or_o waver_v we_o may_v return_v to_o the_o original_n even_o the_o tradition_n by_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o our_o action_n may_v rise_v from_o thence_o from_o whence_o both_o order_n and_o beginning_n do_v arise_v so_o far_o cyprian_n if_o the_o papist_n can_v make_v their_o follower_n now_o believe_v that_o cyprian_a believe_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n or_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a keeper_n of_o tradition_n or_o that_o tradition_n be_v not_o to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o scripture_n than_o you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o purpose_n it_o be_v that_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o why_o they_o call_v it_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n even_o that_o it_o may_v be_v at_o their_o service_n and_o so_o flexible_a as_o to_o yield_v to_o what_o sense_n they_o will_v put_v upon_o it_o when_o they_o will_v needs_o exercise_v the_o same_o authority_n on_o the_o father_n themselves_o who_o in_o their_o familiar_a epistle_n speak_v as_o plain_a as_o they_o can_v firmilianus_n a_o famous_a bishop_n write_v a_o confutation_n of_o pope_n stephen_n epistle_n
presbyter_n ordinatur_fw-la quid_fw-la mihi_fw-la proffer_n unius_fw-la vrbis_fw-la consuttudinem_fw-la quid_fw-la paucitatem_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la ortum_fw-la est_fw-la supercilium_fw-la in_o leges_fw-la eccesiae_n vindicas_fw-la that_o be_v for_o what_o do_v a_o bishop_n except_o ordination_n which_o a_o presbyter_n may_v not_o do_v nor_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_a city_n to_o be_v esteem_v one_o and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n another_o both_o france_n and_o britain_n and_o africa_n and_o persia_n and_o the_o east_n and_o jndia_n and_o all_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n do_v worship_n one_o christ_n and_o observe_v one_o rule_n of_o truth_n if_o you_o seek_v for_o authority_n the_o world_n be_v great_a than_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n wherever_o there_o be_v a_o bishop_n whether_o at_o rome_n or_o at_o eugubium_n or_o at_o constantinople_n or_o at_o rhegium_n at_o alexandria_n or_o at_o tanis_n of_o the_o same_o merit_n he_o be_v also_o of_o the_o same_o priesthood_n the_o power_n of_o riches_n and_o the_o lowness_n of_o poverty_n make_v not_o a_o bishop_n high-eror_a low_a but_o they_o be_v all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o you_o say_v order_n how_o be_v it_o that_o at_o rome_n a_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o deacon_n what_o tell_v you_o i_o of_o the_o custom_n of_o one_o city_n why_o do_v you_o defend_v a_o few_o of_o which_o superciliousness_n be_v arisen_a against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n it_o may_v be_v the_o papist_n by_o their_o supereminent_a power_n of_o interpret_n all_o church_n writer_n can_v put_v such_o a_o sense_n on_o these_o word_n of_o hierom_n as_o shall_v consist_v with_o that_o which_o he_o purposely_o do_v oppose_v but_o i_o think_v a_o impartial_a man_n can_v hardly_o believe_v that_o when_o he_o write_v these_o word_n he_o be_v acquaint_v with_o rome_n claim_n of_o universal_a jurisdiction_n and_o infallibility_n nay_o when_o it_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o much_o of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o epistle_n to_o prove_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o at_o that_o time_n they_o differ_v in_o no_o power_n but_o that_o of_o ordain_v when_o yet_o he_o say_v the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n do_v long_o make_v their_o own_o bishop_n how_o then_o can_v hierome_n believe_v the_o pope_n universal_a jurisdiction_n can_v he_o think_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v that_o power_n over_o the_o church_n which_o he_o think_v not_o any_o bishop_n to_o have_v over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o any_o one_o church_n greg._n nazianzen_n say_v of_o council_n if_o i_o must_v write_v the_o truth_n 121._o i_o be_o of_o this_o mind_n that_o i_o will_v fly_v or_o avoid_v all_o council_n of_o bishop_n for_o i_o never_o see_v a_o glad_a or_o happy_a end_n of_o any_o council_n or_o which_o do_v not_o rather_o bring_v a_o addition_n or_o increase_n of_o evil_n than_o a_o removal_n of_o they_o to_o this_o of_o nazianzen_n bellarmine_n answer_v that_o gregory_n mean_v that_o in_o his_o time_n no_o council_n can_v be_v whole_o lawful_a for_o he_o live_v between_o the_o first_o and_o second_o general_a council_n where_o he_o have_v see_v many_o council_n which_o because_o of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o heretic_n have_v a_o bad_a end_n and_o he_o name_v five_o of_o they_o answ_n 1._o but_o by_o what_o authority_n do_v bellarmine_n confine_v gregory_n word_n to_o some_o council_n which_o he_o speak_v in_o general_a of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v see_v or_o may_v do_v resolve_v to_o avoid_v all_o hereafter_o 2._o here_o note_v that_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o council_n may_v err_v and_o then_o where_o be_v the_o french_a religion_n 3._o i_o will_v fain_o know_v where_o be_v the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o power_n of_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o nazianzen_n day_n if_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a general_n council_n nor_o can_v be_v than_o it_o be_v not_o in_o they_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v either_o in_o the_o people_n and_o how_o shall_v we_o gather_v the_o world_n together_o to_o consult_v with_o they_o or_o else_o as_o bellarmine_n will_v say_v in_o the_o pope_n alone_o or_o in_o the_o roman_a clergy_n with_o he_o council_n i_o hear_v not_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v very_o forward_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a clergy_n in_o particular_a be_v infallible_a though_o bellarmine_n have_v give_v we_o his_o bold_a conjecture_n of_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v therefore_o that_o at_o that_o time_n all_o the_o church_n infallible_a judicial_a power_n and_o so_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v be_v resolve_v into_o the_o pope_n alone_o and_o so_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o world_n must_v then_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o word_n of_o a_o single_a and_o silly_a man_n i_o know_v the_o italian_a faction_n will_v not_o abhor_v this_o at_o any_o time_n but_o then_o they_o shall_v for_o shame_n speak_v out_o and_o deal_v plain_o with_o the_o world_n and_o not_o talk_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o church_n when_o they_o mean_v but_o one_o man_n 4._o and_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o any_o friend_n of_o bellarmine_n how_o far_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v visible_a at_o that_o time_n when_o all_o council_n be_v bad_a and_o none_o can_v be_v lawful_a the_o visibility_n be_v not_o in_o a_o council_n to_o represent_v the_o whole_a and_o the_o ●aity_n be_v not_o much_o note_v when_o council_n go_v wrong_a ●o_o that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a only_o in_o one_o man_n or_o ●_o few_o particular_a person_n according_a to_o the_o papist_n common_a reckon_n who_o judge_n by_o the_o pastor_n visibility_n yea_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o be_v invisible_a ●hen_o and_o divers_a time_n when_o their_o bishop_n be_v a_o heretic_n if_o therefore_o they_o will_v say_v either_o that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a in_o one_o man_n or_o in_o the_o laity_n of_o many_o part_n oppress_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o magistracy_n and_o they_o have_v nothing_o more_o to_o say_v than_o we_o will_v ●ay_n as_o much_o of_o the_o visibility_n of_o our_o church_n before_o luther_n and_o more_o too_o 5._o it_o be_v confess_v here_o also_o that_o ●ot_n only_o a_o council_n but_o the_o great_a number_n by_o ●ery_a many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v heretic_n or_o err_v in_o faith_n 6._o and_o then_o the_o church_n may_v lie_v in_o the_o small_a oppress_a part_n and_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o most_o err_v now_o lucifer_n stapleton_n himself_o confess_v ●hat_n luther_n be_v not_o much_o out_o of_o the_o way_n when_o he_o say_v ●here_o be_v scarce_o five_o bishop_n ●o_o be_v find_v that_o turn_v not_o arrian_n and_o hierome●aith_o ●aith_z dialog_n advers._fw-la lucifer_n the_o whole_a world_n ●●aned_v and_o wonder_v that_o it_o be_v turn_v arrian_n ●_o and_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n at_o that_o time_n ●ll_z quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la when_o the_o judge_n be_v turn_v heretic_n ●ven_o liberius_n and_o the_o council_n and_o if_o the_o high_a eulogy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v prove_v its_o authority_n then_o see_v what_o nazian●ene_n say_v of_o the_o church_n of_o caesarea_n in_o his_o 22._o epistle_n ad_fw-la caesarienses_n patris_fw-la nomine_fw-la scripta_fw-la find_v among_o his_o own_o work_n edit_n paris_n tom._n 1._o 85._o pag._n 785._o and_o also_o in_o basils_n work_n translate_v by_o musculus_fw-la edit_fw-la basil_n 1565._o tom._n 2._o pag._n 17._o see_v every_o church_n as_o be_v christ_n body_n be_v to_o be_v watch_v over_o or_o look_v to_o with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n then_o special_o you_o which_o ancient_o be_v and_o now_o be_v and_o be_v esteem_v almost_o o●_n nigh_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n on_o which_o th●_n whole_a christian_a commonwealth_n do_v cast_v their_o eye_n even_o as_o the_o encompass_v circle_n do_v on_o the_o centre_n not_o only_o for_o the_o soundness_n of_o doctrine_n long_o divulge_v to_o all_o but_o also_o for_o that_o conspicuous_a grace_n of_o concord_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o what_o will_v the_o papist_n say_v but_o that_o this_o be_v fo●_n their_o supremacy_n if_o they_o find_v but_o this_o much_o in_o he_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o in_o thos●_n ancient_a time_n the_o church_n be_v acquaint_v with_o th●_n true_a way_n of_o government_n as_o well_o as_o rome_n be_v now_o and_o therefore_o i_o will_v know_v further_o 8._o whether_o th●_n true_a government_n may_v not_o stand_v with_o great_a desolation_n division_n of_o the_o church_n and_o multitude_n of_o error_n greg._n nazianzen_n say_v orat._n 20_o pag._n mih●_n 345._o 345._o that_o when_o basil_n se●_n upon_o the_o great_a work_n of_o heal_v the_o church_n the_o holy_a
nation_n the_o kingly_a priesthood_n be_v so_o far_o amiss_o that_o it_o be_v distract_v into_o six_o hundred_o opinion_n and_o error_n and_o spoil_v and_o waste_v by_o the_o devil_n if_o the_o pope_n monarchical_a government_n be_v then_o a_o foot_n than_o it_o seem●_n that_o government_n will_v no_o more_o prevent_v sect_n and_o error_n than_o the_o worst_a if_o it_o be_v not_o then_o 1._o they_o be_v now_o usurper_n 1._o and_o they_o can_v prove_v ou●_n way_n of_o government_n to_o be_v wrong_a by_o the_o multitude_n of_o error_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n basil_n be_v far_o from_o resolve_v his_o faith_n into_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n when_o he_o write_v his_o ascetica_fw-la or_o at_o least_o eustathius_n sebastienus_n if_o they_o be_v his_o when_o pag._n 195._o 197._o tom._n 2._o translat_fw-la musculi_fw-la basil_n he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o manifest_a lapse_n of_o faith_n and_o apparent_a vice_n of_o pride_n either_o to_o refuse_v any_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n contain_v or_o to_o bring_v in_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v see_v christ_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o premise_v but_o another_o they_o will_v not_o follow_v but_o fly_v from_o he_o because_o they_o know_v not_o a_o stranger_n voice_n and_o pag._n 193._o he_o say_v that_o sometime_o he_o have_v use_v unwritten_a say_n against_o heretic_n but_o never_o alien_n from_o the_o scripture_n sense_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o now_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o make_v use_n of_o what_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o scripture_n and_o but_o spare_o to_o use_v the_o very_a name_n and_o word_n which_o be_v not_o literal_o conform_v to_o the_o divine_a scripture_n though_o they_o do_v retain_v the_o scripture_n sense_n the_o same_o basil_n epist_n 80._o to._n 2._o p._n mihi_fw-la 74._o medi●um_fw-la renounce_v the_o argument_n from_o custom_n say_v let_v us_o stand_v therefore_o to_o the_o arbitration_n of_o the_o scripture_n inspire_v from_o god_n and_o with_o whosoever_o be_v find_v the_o opinion_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o divine_a oracle_n to_o he_o let_v the_o sense_n or_o sentence_n of_o truth_n be_v whole_o adjudge_v this_o be_v basils_n judgement_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n hilarius_n pictav_n in_o his_o 498._o epistle_n de_fw-fr synodis_fw-la adversus_fw-la arrianos_fw-la pag._n mihi_fw-la 318_o 319._o and_o full_o show_v his_o thought_n that_o council●_n have_v err_v and_o that_o even_o those_o of_o the_o orthodox_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la pag._n 16._o col_fw-fr 2._o he_o say_v commendat_fw-la autem_fw-la fidei_fw-la huius_fw-la integritatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o integrity_n of_o this_o faith_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n for_o this_o foundation_n stand_v strong_a and_o unmoved_a etc._n etc._n and_o he_o make_v it_o a_o remedy_n against_o all_o heresy_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o mat._n canon_n 8._o pag._n 498._o he_o say_v igitur_fw-la secundum_fw-la haec_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la intra_fw-la quas_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la vigilaverit_fw-la naufragae_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n i._n e._n the_o church_n in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o watch_n be_v shipwrack_v and_o most_o full_o lib._n 4._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la pag._n 31._o col_fw-fr 2._o nemini_fw-la autem_fw-la dubium_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v no_o man_n ought_v to_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o must_v use_v god_n doctrine_n for_o the_o know_v of_o divine_a thing_n for_o humane_a weakness_n can_v of_o itself_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n it_o be_v god_n himself_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v concern_v himself_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o offer_v to_o our_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o must_v we_o obey_v for_o either_o we_o must_v deny_v he_o as_o the_o gentile_n do_v if_o we_o disallow_v his_o testimony_n or_o if_o he_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v god_n as_o he_o be_v nothing_o of_o god_n can_v be_v understand_v but_o as_o he_o have_v witness_v of_o himself_o let_v man_n own_a opinion_n therefore_o cease_v or_o be_v lay_v by_o and_o let_v not_o man_n judgement_n extend_v themselves_o beyond_o god_n constitution_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o say_n must_v be_v fetch_v from_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o speech_n because_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o word_n but_o the_o word_n to_o the_o matter_n and_o li._n 4._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la pag._n 29._o col_fw-fr 1._o when_o he_o show_v that_o the_o heretic_n use_v to_o plead_v scripture_n misunderstand_v he_o do_v not_o send_v they_o to_o rome_n for_o a_o judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n but_o still_a conclude_v respondendum_fw-la esse_fw-la existimo_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la perversitati_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la corum_fw-la stultas_fw-la ac_fw-la mortiferas_fw-la institutiones_fw-la evangelicis_fw-la atque_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la testimoniis_fw-la coarguendas_fw-la that_o be_v i_o judge_v that_o we_o must_v answer_v heretic_n perverseness_n and_o all_o their_o foolish_a and_o deadly_a institution_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o same_o hilary_n do_v large_o persuade_v to_o a_o close_a adhere_n to_o the_o gospel_n etc._n and_o the_o sum_n of_o faith_n call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n without_o add_v or_o alter_v under_o any_o pretence_n of_o amend_v and_o show_v the_o division_n and_o depravation_n that_o have_v follow_v since_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n will_v make_v one_o emendation_n and_o on_o their_o example_n other_o council_n have_v make_v and_o mend_v do_v and_o undo_v so_o oft_o that_o they_o have_v mar_v all_o by_o it_o and_o he_o persuade_v the_o emperor_n die_v to_o hearken_v to_o the_o ancient_a gospel_n faith_n and_o not_o to_o synod_n his_o word_n be_v in_o epist_n well_fw-mi lib._n ad_fw-la constant_n august_n pag._n edit_n paris_n 307.308_o where_o have_v show_v how_o he_o have_v err_v in_o look_v after_o council_n he_o say_v recognosce_fw-la fidem_fw-la quam_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v reacknowledge_v that_o belief_n which_o thou_o desire_v to_o hear_v from_o the_o bishop_n but_o hear_v not_o for_o they_o of_o who_o it_o be_v require_v do_v write_v their_o own_o thing_n and_o do_v not_o preach_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n they_o have_v draw_v about_o a_o endless_a and_o perpetual_a circle_n for_o the_o modesty_n of_o humane_a infirmity_n shall_v have_v contain_v all_o mystery_n of_o divine_a knowledge_n in_o those_o bound_n of_o conscience_n only_o which_o he_o believe_v in_o and_o not_o after_o a_o belief_n confess_v and_o swear_v in_o baptism_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o doubt_v or_o innovate_v any_o thing_n else_o under_o the_o improbable_a occasion_n of_o this_o necessity_n sense_n the_o custom_n be_v come_v up_o of_o writing_n and_o renew_v the_o belief_n which_o after_o that_o it_o begin_v rather_o to_o frame_v new_a thing_n then_o to_o retain_v what_o be_v receive_v it_o neither_o defend_v the_o old_a nor_o confirm_v the_o new_a and_o belief_n be_v now_o become_v rather_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o time_n than_o of_o the_o gospel_n while_o it_o be_v write_v according_a to_o the_o year_n and_o not_o hold_v according_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o baptism_n it_o be_v a_o most_o perilous_a and_o miserable_a thing_n that_o we_o have_v as_o many_o belief_n as_o will_n and_o as_o many_o doctrine_n as_o manner_n and_o that_o as_o many_o cause_n of_o blasphemy_n spring_v up_o as_o there_o be_v vice_n and_o when_o according_a to_o one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n and_o one_o baptism_n there_o be_v one_o belief_n we_o be_v fall_v from_o that_o belief_n which_o be_v but_o one_o and_o while_o many_o be_v make_v they_o therefore_o begin_v to_o be_v that_o there_o may_v be_v none_o for_o we_o be_v on_o both_o side_n conscious_a that_o since_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a we_o have_v write_v nothing_o but_o belief_n while_o there_o be_v quarrel_n about_o the_o word_n and_o question_n about_o the_o newness_n and_o occasion_n about_o the_o ambiguitye_n and_o complaint_n about_o the_o author_n and_o strife_n about_o the_o party_n and_o difficulty_n in_o consent_n and_o while_o every_o one_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o anathema_n to_o another_o almost_o no_o one_o now_o be_v christ_n for_o we_o be_v carry_v about_o by_o a_o uncertain_a wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o either_o while_o we_o teach_v we_o trouble_v or_o while_o we_o be_v teach_v we_o err_v and_o what_o be_v the_o change_n that_o be_v in_o the_o last_o year_n belief_n the_o first_o decreeth_n that_o the_o word_n homoousion_n shall_v be_v silence_v the_o next_o decreeth_n and_o preach_v the_o homoousion_n the_o three_o do_v by_o indulgence_n excuse_v the_o word_n usia_n which_o be_v simple_o before_o use_v by_o our_o father_n the_o four_o and_o last_o do_v not_o excuse_v it_o but_o condemn_v
have_v small_a reason_n to_o hear_v we_o or_o regard_v we_o or_o to_o trust_v their_o salvation_n on_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o deliver_v to_o they_o see_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v or_o they_o know_v we_o may_v but_o deceive_v they_o as_o be_v first_o ourselves_o deceive_v so_o that_o this_o make_v way_n to_o infidelity_n or_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o faith_n if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a this_o be_v their_o all_o the_o first_o and_o last_o for_o aught_o i_o can_v find_v that_o be_v worth_n the_o repeat_n and_o of_o how_o little_a value_n this_o argue_v be_v i_o think_v shall_v be_v very_o easy_a to_o apprehend_v 1._o look_v back_o to_o the_o state_v of_o the_o question_n and_o remember_v how_o far_o we_o say_v the_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o how_o far_o infallible_a and_o it_o may_v suffice_v to_o confute_v all_o this_o 2._o it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a and_o to_o be_v actual_o not-mistaken_a nor_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o some_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o all_o thing_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v or_o believe_v nor_o to_o be_v certain_a by_o such_o external_a evidence_n of_o verity_n and_o internal_a grace_n as_o be_v ordinary_a to_o the_o faithful_a and_o to_o be_v certain_a by_o a_o pretend_a privilege_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n even_o know_v the_o conclusion_n as_o such_o without_o know_v the_o medium_n we_o be_v certain_a that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o certain_a that_o we_o be_v certain_a and_o therefore_o pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la infallible_o certain_a and_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o true_a believer_n shall_v ever_o fall_v from_o this_o certainty_n we_o shall_v speak_v more_o agreeable_o to_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n then_o to_o you_o who_o say_v that_o they_o may_v fall_v away_o and_o we_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o objective_n certain_o or_o infallibility_n if_o i_o may_v use_v the_o word_n active_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o every_o sentence_n of_o it_o which_o can_v never_o fail_v if_o our_o faith_n shall_v fail_v and_o we_o can_v manifest_v to_o our_o hearer_n such_o ground_n of_o their_o belief_n as_o be_v infallible_a and_o will_v never_o deceive_v those_o that_o trust_v in_o they_o your_o argument_n therefore_o most_o vain_o suppose_v that_o man_n sai_z must_v be_v ground_v on_o the_o word_n and_o credit_n of_o their_o teacher_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o can_v have_v no_o strong_a a_o faith_n then_o be_v answerable_a to_o our_o credit_n with_o they_o but_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n it_o be_v god_n veracity_n and_o not_o we_o that_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o the_o hearer_n faith_n we_o do_v not_o desire_v as_o it_o seem_v the_o papist_n do_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v their_o faith_n on_o trust_n from_o we_o and_o believe_v all_o on_o our_o word_n we_o do_v but_o reveal_v to_o they_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o show_v they_o that_o in_o it_o which_o will_v prove_v itself_o to_o be_v so_o so_o that_o as_o long_o as_o our_o reason_n proof_n evidence_n be_v infallible_a what_o necessity_n be_v there_o that_o the_o speaker_n must_v be_v infallible_a and_o that_o in_o every_o thing_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v all_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o romish_a faction_n infallible_a you_o will_v say_v no_o yourselves_o must_v they_o not_o therefore_o be_v hear_v or_o may_v not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o preach_v beget_v a_o certain_a belief_n in_o the_o hearer_n you_o will_v i_o know_v with_o one_o voice_n say_v that_o i_o may_v and_o do_v how_o then_o do_v fallible_a man_n among_o you_o by_o preach_v bring_v man_n to_o a_o infallible_a faith_n in_o tant●m_fw-la and_o why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v so_o with_o we_o will_v you_o say_v that_o you_o preach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v infallible_a why_o but_o how_o do_v your_o hearer_n know_v that_o must_v they_o take_v it_o on_o the_o preacher_n word_n who_o proclaim_v himself_o fallible_a why_o then_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o take_v it_o on_o our_o word_n that_o christ_n and_o scripture_n be_v infallible_a when_o we_o say_v we_o preach_v in_o christ_n name_n as_o confident_o as_o you_o say_v that_o you_o preach_v in_o the_o pope_n name_n and_o so_o your_o doctrine_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v both_o uncertain_a if_o both_o rest_v on_o the_o fallible_a preacher_n word_n but_o if_o you_o will_v not_o bid_v your_o hearer_n take_v your_o word_n but_o will_v undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v to_o thtm_v by_o cogent_a evidence_n that_o you_o be_v send_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o you_o speak_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o infallible_o warrant_v you_o to_o speak_v all_o which_o will_v be_v incumbent_a on_o you_o to_o prove_v then_o will_v we_o much_o more_o easy_o and_o true_o prove_v that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o that_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v incumbent_n on_o we_o to_o prove_v see_v a_o infallible_a word_n of_o a_o infallible_a god_n must_v be_v hear_v how_o fallible_a soever_o we_o may_v be_v so_o that_o you_o may_v easy_o see_v if_o you_o will_v that_o your_o task_n be_v incomparable_o hard_a than_o we_o even_o as_o much_o as_o to_o prove_v a_o falsehood_n be_v hard_a than_o to_o prove_v a_o truth_n how_o will_v you_o approve_v of_o such_o reason_n as_o your_o own_o in_o other_o case_n what_o if_o ten_o man_n that_o have_v be_v at_o a_o fight_n come_v home_o and_o tell_v you_o which_o side_n have_v the_o better_a though_o they_o be_v all_o fallible_a may_v they_o not_o possible_o give_v you_o such_o infallible_a proof_n of_o what_o they_o say_v as_o may_v make_v it_o certain_a what_o if_o all_o the_o lawyer_n in_o the_o land_n be_v fallible_a man_n yea_o and_o all_o other_o man_n in_o the_o land_n and_o do_v not_o know_v all_o thing_n nor_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v know_v about_o the_o law_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o these_o fallible_a man_n may_v not_o infallible_o know_v themselves_o and_o infallible_o prove_v to_o other_o even_o by_o certain_a humane_a testimony_n uncapable_a of_o deceit_n that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v indeed_o a_o statute_n law_n of_o the_o land_n make_v by_o king_n and_o parliament_n do_v all_o man_n hold_v their_o land_n and_o life_n by_o law_n and_o so_o many_o dye_n at_o the_o gallow_n by_o law_n and_o yet_o be_v it_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o be_v the_o law_n indeed_o or_o not_o and_o all_o because_o the_o man_n that_o say_v so_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o all_o be_v dead_a that_o see_v they_o make_v why_o but_o a_o man_n may_v be_v certain_a of_o many_o a_o thing_n that_o yet_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n nor_o in_o all_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v your_o argument_n therefore_o be_v strong_a against_o yourselves_o who_o resolve_v man_n say_v into_o humane_a credit_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o against_o we_o who_o resolve_v it_o into_o god_n veracity_n and_o teach_v not_o man_n to_o take_v all_o upon_o trust_n from_o our_o bare_a word_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o god_n be_v infallible_a when_o we_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o we_o can_v infallible_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o what_o it_o contain_v in_o the_o point_n of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n we_o can_v without_o infallibility_n in_o all_o other_o matter_n infallible_o prove_v to_o they_o what_o god_n require_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o do_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v the_o infallibility_n of_o our_o proof_n and_o not_o of_o our_o bare_a word_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o man_n belief_n but_o the_o papist_n expect_v their_o mislead_a flock_n shall_v take_v their_o bare_a word_n and_o so_o make_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o follower_n a_o humane_a faith_n and_o to_o blind_v the_o business_n they_o pretend_v to_o a_o certain_a infallibility_n as_o if_o their_o say_n be_v divine_a man_n will_v make_v use_n of_o physician_n for_o their_o body_n though_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a much_o more_o may_v they_o do_v it_o with_o encouragement_n if_o they_o can_v infallible_o tell_v they_o the_o true_a cure_n of_o every_o mortal_a disease_n though_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o small_a disease_n that_o they_o can_v not_o cure_v or_o a_o hundred_o question_n in_o anatomy_n and_o about_o the_o nature_n of_o disease_n which_o they_o can_v not_o resolve_v why_o then_o shall_v man_n conceit_n that_o the_o ministry_n be_v vain_a that_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o know_v not_o all_o thing_n have_v god_n church_n be_v without_o infallible_a ordinary_a guide_n from_o
of_o the_o church_n and_o decider_n of_o controversy_n 3._o observe_v also_o that_o vincentius_n do_v full_o and_o purposely_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n sufficiency_n and_o never_o once_o mention_v any_o tradition_n as_o necessary_a to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o scripture_n or_o as_o part_v of_o god_n word_n when_o scripture_n be_v but_o the_o other_o part_n not_o a_o word_n of_o such_o tradition_n but_o only_o of_o tradition_n subordinate_a to_o scripture_n finaliter_fw-la for_o the_o true_a expound_v of_o they_o hear_v himself_o cap._n 2._o hic_fw-la forsit_fw-la a_o requirat_fw-la aliquis_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la perfectus_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la canon_n sihique_fw-la ad_fw-la omnia_fw-la satis_fw-la superque_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la quid_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la ei_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la intelligentiae_fw-la jungatur_fw-la authoritas_fw-la quia_fw-la videlicet_fw-la scripturam_fw-la sacram_fw-la pro_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sua_fw-la altitudine_fw-la non_fw-la uno_fw-la eodemque_fw-la sensu_fw-la universi_fw-la accipinut_n and_o in_o his_o recapitulation_n cap._n 41._o diximu●_n in_o superioribus_fw-la hanc_fw-la fuisset_fw-la semper_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la hodie_fw-la catholicorum_n consuetudinem_fw-la ut_fw-la fidem_fw-la veram_fw-la duobus_fw-la his_fw-la modis_fw-la approbent_fw-la primum_fw-la divini_fw-la canonis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la deinde_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la traditione_n non_fw-la quia_fw-la canon_n solus_fw-la non_fw-la sibi_fw-la ad_fw-la universa_fw-la sufficiat_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la verba_fw-la divina_fw-la pro_fw-la svo_fw-la plerique_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la interpretantes_fw-la varias_fw-la opiniones_fw-la errores_fw-la que_fw-la concipiant_fw-la so_o that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a ad_fw-la omne_fw-la ad_fw-la universa_fw-la only_o the_o church_n tradition_n that_o be_v interpretation_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o it_o 4_o note_v also_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o vincentius_n mention_v be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n any_o more_o than_o any_o other_o but_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o be_v that_o which_o have_v be_v teach_v or_o hold_v ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la every_o where_o always_o and_o by_o all_o 5_o note_v also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o authoritative_a determination_n of_o any_o person_n or_o person_n whosoever_o but_o universal_a consent_n that_o he_o refer_v u●to_o 6._o and_o it_o be_v not_o in_o lesser_a probable_a or_o controvert_v point_n but_o in_o those_o great_a necessary_a point_n which_o the_o church_n have_v whole_o every_o where_o in_o all_o age_n agreee_v in_o 7._o note_v diligent_o that_o one_o of_o the_o case_n he_o put_v be_v this_o cap_z 4._o quid_fw-la si_fw-la novella_fw-la aliqua_fw-la contagio_fw-la non_fw-la jam_fw-la portiunculam_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la totam_fw-la pari●er_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la commaculare_fw-la conetur_fw-la i._o e._n but_o what_o if_o any_o novel_a contagion_n shall_v not_o only_o stain_v a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a church_n a_o presumptuous_a question_n in_o the_o papist_n sense_n but_o what_o say_v he_o to_o it_o do_v he_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a no_o but_o tunc_fw-la item_n providebit_fw-la ut_fw-la antiquitati_fw-la inhaeteat_fw-la quae_fw-la prorsus_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ab_fw-la ulla_fw-la novitatis_fw-la fraud_n seduci_fw-la i._n e_o then_o let_v he_o see_v that_o he_o stick_v to_o antiquity_n which_o can_v at_o all_o now_o be_v seduce_v by_o any_o fraud_n of_o novelty_n here_o 1._o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o present_a church_n may_v all_o err_v 2._o he_o make_v the_o remedy_n to_o be_v a_o appeal_n to_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o not_o as_o the_o papist_n to_o appeal_v in_o all_o case_n to_o the_o present_a church_n or_o pope_n costerus_n seek_v by_o a_o citation_n out_o of_o tertullian_n in_o his_o annot._n to_o detort_v both_o 8._o last_o note_v diligent_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o case_n that_o vincentius_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n but_o only_o as_o in_o the_o weighty_a use_n beforesaid_a so_o in_o case_n of_o the_o newness_n of_o error_n when_o they_o first_o arise_v before_o they_o falsify_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n themselves_o let_v they_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o straits_n of_o time_n and_o before_o by_o the_o large_a spread_n of_o the_o poison_n they_o endeavour_v to_o vitiate_v the_o volume_n of_o our_o ancestor_n but_o dilate_a and_o inveterate_a heresy_n be_v to_o be_v set_v upon_o this_o way_n because_o by_o the_o long_a tract_n of_o time_n they_o have_v have_v a_o long_a occasion_n of_o steal_v truth_n that_o be_v antiquity_n and_o other_o sign_n of_o truth_n and_o therefore_o as_o for_o all_o those_o ancient_a prophaness_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n we_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n convince_v they_o but_o by_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o scripture_n if_o there_o be_v need_n or_o avoid_v they_o as_o certain_o already_o of_o old_a convict_a and_o condemn_v by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o catholic_a priest_n they_o be_v his_o own_o word_n translate_v pag._n 677._o edit_fw-la perionii_fw-la &_o pag._n 87_o 88_o edit_fw-la colon._n 1613._o so_o that_o you_o see_v vincentius_n suppose_v error_n may_v infect_v all_o the_o church_n and_o may_v grow_v old_a and_o so_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o in_o such_o case_n only_a scripture_n must_v be_v plead_v against_o it_o unless_o also_o we_o can_v produce_v some_o ancient_a council_n that_o have_v condemn_v it_o this_o be_v the_o very_a case_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n their_o heresy_n be_v old_a and_o far_o spread_v though_o not_o universal_a nor_o of_o utmost_a antiquity_n therefore_o between_o we_o and_o they_o the_o scripture_n only_o must_v be_v plead_v where_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o judge_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o plainness_n we_o need_v not_o go_v to_o the_o ancient_a church_n where_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o expositor_n we_o be_v content_a to_o deal_v with_o they_o on_o vincentius_n ground_n and_o to_o admit_v of_o that_o which_o ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la have_v be_v hold_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o will_v do_v the_o like_a and_o indeed_o this_o be_v our_o very_a religion_n will_v the_o papist_n but_o dispute_n their_o cause_n with_o we_o on_o these_o term_n we_o shall_v ready_o join_v issue_n with_o they_o and_o doubt_v not_o of_o a_o good_a success_n of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o our_o conradus_n bergius_n prax._n cathol_n divin_fw-fr canonis_fw-la the_o dispute_n which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o manage_v be_v only_o against_o popery_n in_o the_o gross_a and_o two_o or_o three_o branch_n of_o it_o only_o in_o particular_a i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v annex_v a_o brief_a enumeration_n of_o the_o particular_a error_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o vulgar_a may_v observe_v and_o avoid_v they_o and_o therein_o i_o think_v to_o have_v endeavour_v the_o true_a state_v of_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o both_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o error_n on_o the_o other_o extreme_a and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v take_v out_o of_o the_o papist_n hand_n the_o great_a of_o all_o their_o advantage_n against_o we_o which_o be_v the_o false-opposed_n opinion_n and_o unsound_a argument_n of_o such_o as_o thus_o err_v on_o the_o other_o side_n but_o perceive_v how_o it_o will_v lengthen_v this_o work_n beyond_o the_o intend_a limit_n and_o how_o certain_o all_o those_o that_o so_o run_v into_o extreme_n will_v fall_v a_o quarrel_v with_o i_o for_o not_o state_v the_o controversy_n according_a to_o their_o fancy_n i_o have_v think_v best_a for_o answer_v all_o my_o end_n at_o cheap_a rate_n to_o give_v you_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o popish_a error_n in_o the_o word_n of_o doctor_n feild_n and_o to_o that_o end_n to_o transcribe_v his_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n that_o so_o the_o simple_a reader_n may_v have_v some_o help_n to_o inform_v he_o without_o a_o commix_v mean_n to_o pervert_v he_o and_o for_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n solid_o defend_v and_o can_v have_v time_n to_o read_v many_o book_n i_o know_v not_o of_o any_o one_o that_o they_o may_v more_o profitable_o and_o safe_o read_v to_o that_o end_n then_o the_o say_a book_n of_o doctor_n field_n on_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o the_o appendix_n to_o the_o three_o part_n which_o be_v but_o the_o defence_n of_o this_o very_a chapter_n prove_v it_o in_o particular_n that_o the_o western_a church_n be_v protestant_n and_o not_o popish_a even_o in_o the_o worst_a time_n before_o luther_n reformation_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v but_o a_o seduce_a tyrannical_a party_n in_o the_o church_n endeavour_v to_o obtrude_v their_o error_n against_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o good_a man_n in_o which_o he_o have_v quite_o break_v down_o those_o pretence_n of_o universality_n and_o all_o the_o church_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o fond_o boast_v in_o dr._n field_n of_o the_o
that_o it_o be_v ecclesia_fw-la vel_fw-la quacunque_fw-la re_fw-la alia_fw-la that_o austin_n speak_v 2._o that_o its_o cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la and_o therefore_o not_o a_o argument_n only_o for_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o church_n and_o right_a ground_n 3._o so_o do_v we_o procure_v the_o flame_n of_o popish_a hatred_n ☞_o 4._o so_o may_v w●_n say_v as_o if_o we_o have_v bid_v the_o apostle_n put_v nothing_o in_o the_o bible_n to_o prove_v the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n andradius_fw-la defen_n l._n 2._o vain_o reply_v that_o this_o be_v speak_v only_o to_o those_o heretic_n that_o plead_v only_a tradition_n and_o reject_v scripture_n 1._o that_o be_v plain_o false_a for_o tatianus_n do_v not_o so_o 2._o he_o speak_v of_o all_o such_o tradition_n therefore_o of_o the_o popish_a popish_a that_o be_v save_o constantinus_n magnus_n see_v andrad_n t●ef_n l._n 2._o fol._n 110_o &c_n &c_n where_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o cavil_n salvianus_n massil_n de_fw-fr provide_v li._n 3._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 62._o the_o sum_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n adv_fw-la heres_fw-la heres_fw-la that_o be_v before_o they_o corrupt_v ancient_a writer_n or_o grow_v so_o old_a as_o to_o pretend_v to_o antiquity_n themselves_o because_o many_o of_o these_o error_n be_v deliver_v only_o by_o particular_a doctor_n and_o all_o be_v not_o of_o a_o mind_n as_o to_o the_o sense_n and_o some_o of_o the_o word_n may_v admit_v a_o tolerable_a and_o orthodox_n meaning_n i_o think_v meet_v to_o add_v these_o animadversion_n to_o acquaint_v you_o in_o what_o sense_n we_o reject_v they_o what_o i_o pass_v by_o without_o animadversion_n i_o leave_v upon_o they_o as_o it_o be_v here_o charge_v and_o also_o suppose_v the_o difference_n to_o lie_v plain_a plain_a 1._o that_o be_v as_o the_o authentic_a sign_n of_o god_n will_n for_o we_o all_o confess_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o authorize_v chief_a revealer_n and_o god_n himself_o only_o as_o the_o principal_a efficient_a and_o christ_n the_o mediator_n as_o the_o first_o corner_n stone_n of_o the_o matter_n reveal_v and_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o keeper_n or_o subject_n in_o quo_fw-la of_o true_a belief_n for_o the_o law_n be_v write_v 〈◊〉_d the_o heart_n of_o its_o member_n and_o it_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n or_o foundation_n of_o truth_n 3._o this_o erorr_n be_v one_o of_o the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o romish_a fabric_n 6._o when_o yet_o it_o be_v most_o clear_o prove_v by_o many_o especial_o blondel_n in_o a_o just_a volume_n that_o abundance_n of_o they_o be_v forgery_n and_o dalaeus_n prove_v it_o particular_o of_o the_o clementines_n 7._o at_o lest_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la so_o that_o they_o never_o know_v when_o their_o faith_n be_v at_o its_o full_a stature_n 8._o by_o this_o you_o may_v conjecture_v from_o whence_o the_o quaker_n have_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o light_n within_o we_o 9_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n giver_n and_o the_o law_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o life_n and_o of_o judgement_n 10._o we_o confess_v as_o peter_n say_v of_o paul_n epistle_n that_o there_o be_v something_n in_o they_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o the_o ignorant_a pervert_n as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n but_o we_o maintain_v that_o they_o have_v so_o much_o light_v as_o suffice_v to_o their_o end_n that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o life_n 11._o this_o be_v one_o of_o their_o great_a error_n 15._o the_o last_o clause_n that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v great_a than_o the_o church_n the_o french_a do_v not_o hold_v and_o so_o they_o be_v divide_v in_o their_o foundation_n 16._o they_o yield_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v elder_a than_o the_o church_n and_o we_o yield_v that_o the_o church_n be_v elder_a than_o ●●●ings_n but_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o doctrine_n as_o fetch_v from_o these_o write_n be_v now_o before_o the_o present_a church_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o at_o least_o as_o to_o the_o generality_n of_o member_n 17._o the_o negative_a be_v their_o master_n error_n but_o the_o affirmative_a proposition_n be_v not_o deny_v of_o we_o as_o to_o every_o kind_n of_o dependence_n but_o of_o some_o special_a sort_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o pref._n to_o the_o saint_n rest_v part._n 2._o edit_fw-la 2._o etc._n etc._n 18._o the_o height_n of_o romish_a arrogancy_n 20._o and_o yet_o i_o will_v that_o vulgar_a translation_n may_v but_o be_v allow_v to_o be_v the_o decide_n ●●le_a for_o there_o be_v e●●ugh_o in_o it_o against_o they_o 21._o this_o error_n be_v a_o accusation_n of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o contrary_a to_o express_v scripture_n and_o destructive_a to_o the_o progress_n of_o knowledge_n and_o godliness_n and_o such_o as_o the_o experience_n of_o gracious_a soul_n shall_v provoke_v they_o to_o detest_v and_o have_v they_o but_o this_o ●ne_n they_o can_v never_o expect_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v unite_v upon_o their_o principle_n 1._o as_o concupiscence_n be_v take_v improper_o for_o the_o corrupt_a sensitive_a appetite_n so_o it_o be_v of_o god_n but_o as_o it_o signify_v the_o appetite_n distemper_v or_o corrupt_v or_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o will_n incline_v it_o to_o evil_a it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n 2._o see_v rada_n first_o controversy_n 3._o a_o posse_fw-la mori_fw-la and_o a_o posse_fw-la non_fw-la mori_fw-la be_v not_o then_o natural_a but_o a_o non_fw-la posse_fw-la mori_fw-la or_o a_o actual_a non_fw-fr mori_fw-la be_v to_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o obedience_n and_o be_v now_o give_v by_o christ_n and_o a_o non_fw-la posse_fw-la non_fw-la mori_fw-la or_o a_o actual_a death_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o sin_n 4_o 5._o i_o will_v they_o will_v prove_v this_o tradition_n to_o be_v apostolical_a 1._o in_o this_o they_o no_o more_o agree_v among_o themselves_o then_o with_o we_o 2._o say_v davenant_n the_o point_n of_o predetermination_n be_v a_o controversy_n between_o the_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n which_o protestant_n have_v no_o mind_n to_o trouble_v themselves_o with_o but_o they_o that_o do_v be_v not_o of_o a_o mind_n in_o it_o no_o more_o than_o they_o 4._o god_n do_v not_o cause_n sin_n even_o when_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n but_o only_o permit_v it_o but_o by_o such_o a_o permission_n as_o proceed_v from_o a_o punish_a intention_n and_o so_o he_o just_o withhold_v his_o grace_n and_o giveth_z man_n over_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n &_o their_o own_o lust_n 2._o the_o body_n be_v not_o to_o be_v mortify_v by_o self-murder_n but_o the_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o action_n of_o the_o sensitive_a appetite_n be_v to_o be_v mortify_v and_o all_o its_o motion_n subject_v to_o holy_a reason_n and_o this_o be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o mortify_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o our_o corruption_n will_v never_o be_v call_v in_o scripture_n so_o often_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o body_n if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o the_o fleshly_a appetite_n be_v much_o of_o the_o seat_n of_o it_o and_o the_o please_a of_o that_o appetite_n and_o imagination_n much_o of_o the_o end_n that_o i_o say_v not_o the_o whole_a 4._o sin_n be_v call_v voluntary_a either_o because_o they_o be_v in_o the_o will_n or_o from_o the_o will_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n the_o vicious_a habit_n of_o the_o will_v be_v voluntary_a in_o the_o second_o the_o ellicite_v and_o imperate_a act_n also_o they_o be_v voluntary_a direct_o and_o formal_o as_o be_v the_o will_v own_o act_n and_o habit_n or_o participative_a as_o be_v the_o act_n and_o habit_n of_o all_o the_o imperate_a faculty_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o sin_n but_o what_o be_v voluntary_a in_o one_o of_o these_o sense_n nor_o any_o further_a than_o voluntary_a 5._o neither_o they_o nor_o we_o be_v agree_v about_o the_o quiddity_n of_o original_a sin_n 8._o metaphor_n be_v not_o usual_o the_o fit_a term_n to_o state_n controversy_n in_o we_o have_v vicious_a habit_n and_o the_o absence_n of_o rectify_v habit_n call_v this_o what_o you_o will_n free_a will_n be_v either_o physical_a and_o that_o all_o man_n have_v as_o they_o be_v man_n or_o moral_a which_o be_v 1._o to_o be_v free_a from_o a_o legal_a restraint_n from_o good_a and_o this_o all_o have_v or_o to_o be_v free_a from_o vicious_a habit_n and_o this_o only_a the_o sanctify_a have_v and_o that_o but_o in_o part_n 9_o it_o be_v the_o most_o noble_a controversy_n among_o the_o schoolman_n and_o thomist_n and_o the_o great_a part_n seem_v rather_o to_o err_v on_o the_o other_o extreme_a and_o the_o scotist_n that_o hold_v this_o to_o rectify_v they_o do_v gi●_n such_o explication_n of_o their_o doctrine_n as_o be_v well_o worth_a our_o study_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o rada_n first_o controversy_n
p._n 29._o l._n 21_o d._n it_o p._n 308_o l._n 18._o r_o judicial_a p._n 309_o l._n 28._o r._n confute_v p._n 314._o l._n 28._o r_o there_o be_v p._n 331._o l_o 17._o r._n montanus_n p_o 333._o l._n 8_o r._n tatianu●_n p._n 41._o l_o ●2_n r_o caeteri_fw-la p_o 342._o l._n 1●_n r._n suburbi_fw-la ●r●●_n l._n 32._o ●_o head_a p._n 34●_n l_o ●6_n r._n to_o we_o p._n 348_o l._n 2._o r_o r●ma●e_n l._n 4._o r._n author_n p._n 355._o l._n ●0_n r._n word_n l._n 23_o r._n prove●●_n p._n 356._o l._n 2._o r._n rather_o than_o p._n 358._o marg._n add_v de_fw-fr l._n 28._o r._n literis_fw-la p._n 59_o l._n 31._o r._n secura_fw-la p._n 364_o l._n 11._o d._n i_o e._n p._n 366._o l._n 8._o r._n gloss_n p._n 370._o l._n 8._o r._n fu●sse_n &_o p._n 371._o l._n 28._o add_v in_o l_o 3._o add_v other_o p._n 377_o l_o 5_o r._n know_v l_o 28_o r._n these_o p._n 380_o l._n 23._o r._n in_o p._n 379_o l._n 12._o r._n catalogue_n p._n 217._o l._n ●2_n after_o faith_n add_v or_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n even_o christ_n himself_o which_o indeed_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n agreeable_a to_o 1_o cor._n 10.4_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n query_n whether_o the_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n religion_n common_o call_v protestant_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o great_a business_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n be_v to_o keep_v man_n from_o that_o salvation_n which_o christ_n have_v so_o dear_o purchase_v so_o gracious_o offer_v and_o have_v appoint_v we_o such_o excellent_a help_n to_o attain_v to_o which_o end_n it_o be_v his_o first_o endeavour_n that_o man_n may_v not_o know_v or_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o felicity_n and_o what_o it_o be_v and_o how_o much_o to_o be_v desire_v and_o his_o next_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o know_v the_o way_n to_o it_o and_o the_o last_o be_v to_o keep_v they_o from_o walk_v in_o that_o way_n when_o they_o know_v it_o by_o the_o first_o mean_v he_o keep_v from_o salvation_n all_o atheist_n and_o heathen_n that_o know_v not_o or_o believe_v not_o the_o life_n to_o come_v by_o the_o second_o all_o infidel_n that_o believe_v not_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o way_n and_o all_o heretic_n that_o believe_v not_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n in_o subordination_n to_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o three_o all_o hypocrite_n and_o unsanctified_a ungodly_a impenitent_a man_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o yet_o have_v a_o superficial_a belief_n of_o these_o truth_n our_o question_n in_o hand_n be_v for_o the_o escape_v the_o second_o of_o these_o snare_n by_o discover_v which_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n the_o policy_n of_o the_o devil_n have_v always_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v the_o world_n from_o know_v this_o way_n by_o these_o two_o mean_n first_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o keep_v they_o in_o utter_a darkness_n that_o this_o way_n may_v not_o be_v reveal_v to_o they_o or_o be_v reveal_v may_v not_o be_v understand_v second_o or_o if_o that_o will_v not_o do_v by_o make_v such_o a_o number_n of_o byway_n on_o every_o side_n that_o the_o true_a and_o only_a way_n may_v hardly_o be_v discern_v and_o this_o be_v his_o end_n in_o raise_v so_o many_o heresy_n and_o this_o be_v the_o course_n he_o take_v to_o mislead_v they_o that_o have_v escape_v from_o the_o darkness_n of_o infidelity_n he_o begin_v this_o trade_n betimes_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o see_v the_o multifarious_a offspring_n of_o the_o deceiver_n sprout_v up_o apace_o in_o their_o own_o time_n yet_o do_v it_o never_o enter_v into_o their_o thought_n to_o tell_v the_o church_n that_o by_o this_o all_o heresy_n shall_v be_v know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v condemn_v they_o or_o to_o send_v it_o down_o to_o all_o posterity_n as_o the_o true_a touchstone_n to_o tell_v they_o which_o be_v the_o only_a right_a way_n among_o all_o these_o heresy_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o p●pe_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o have_v be_v a_o ready_a and_o easy_a way_n for_o the_o apostle_n to_o have_v prescribe_v and_o for_o we_o to_o have_v receive_v if_o it_o have_v be_v true_a it_o may_v have_v save_v they_o much_o labour_n in_o give_v we_o that_o body_n of_o sacred_a doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v make_v indeed_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o safe_a way_n and_o it_o may_v have_v spare_v we_o much_o more_o labour_n of_o search_v and_o study_v which_o be_v the_o way_n and_o we_o may_v all_o have_v send_v to_o rome_n and_o be_v resolve_v without_o any_o more_o ado_n sure_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o so_o envious_a to_o our_o ease_n and_o safety_n as_o to_o have_v silence_v this_o easy_a way_n if_o they_o have_v know_v it_o themselves_o but_o as_o every_o heretic_n when_o he_o find_v out_o a_o new_a way_n do_v condemn_v the_o old_a as_o inconsistent_a with_o his_o new_a so_o do_v the_o papist_n since_o this_o new_a way_n have_v be_v cry_v up_o that_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o heaven_n but_o by_o rome_n it_o be_v their_o business_n to_o deter_v people_n from_o any_o other_o way_n and_o to_o that_o end_n to_o tell_v they_o that_o there_o be_v no_o safe_a way_n but_o they_o as_o the_o quaker_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o heaven_n but_o they_o and_o some_o side_n anabaptist_n say_v there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o heaven_n but_o by_o be_v baptise_a again_o as_o they_o be_v so_o do_v the_o papist_n tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o heaven_n but_o by_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n i_o never_o see_v the_o place_n but_o sure_o that_o town_n have_v some_o admirable_a excellency_n in_o it_o that_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n shall_v so_o much_o set_v his_o heart_n upon_o it_o as_o to_o endow_v it_o with_o such_o a_o stupendious_a prerogative_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v from_o everlasting_a torment_n that_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n and_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o universal_a head_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o i_o that_o he_o that_o set_v not_o his_o heart_n so_o much_o on_o his_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n or_o on_o that_o choose_a people_n as_o not_o to_o forsake_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o have_v the_o heaven_n for_o his_o throne_n and_o to_o who_o the_o sun_n itself_o be_v as_o darkness_n shall_v yet_o be_v so_o take_v with_o a_o town_n call_v rome_n build_v and_o long_o inhabit_v by_o idolater_n defile_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o thousand_o of_o martyr_n against_o which_o the_o foul_n under_o the_o altar_n cry_v out_o how_o long_a lord_n holy_a and_o true_a will_v thou_o not_o avenge_v our_o blood_n etc._n etc._n as_o to_o ordain_v that_o no_o man_n in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n even_o the_o antipode_n that_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o name_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v save_v though_o he_o shall_v never_o so_o much_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n unless_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o bishop_n of_o this_o town_n and_o obey_v he_o when_o yet_o with_o andradius_fw-la and_o other_o papist_n it_o be_v a_o hard_a question_n whether_o a_o man_n may_v not_o be_v save_v in_o those_o heathen_a country_n without_o believe_v in_o christ_n himself_o be_v it_o not_o a_o marvel_n that_o we_o never_o read_v that_o rome_n be_v once_o name_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o it_o never_o be_v put_v into_o our_o creed_n as_o one_o of_o the_o necessary_a article_n to_o salvation_n especial_o when_o we_o find_v there_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o sure_o will_v have_v be_v some_o way_n intimate_v to_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n or_o that_o which_o be_v head_v by_o their_o bishop_n if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o indeed_o i_o find_v but_o three_o name_n strict_o so_o call_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o pope_n or_o roman_a church_n be_v none_o of_o they_o one_o be_v jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o other_o be_v she_o that_o bear_v he_o and_o the_o three_o be_v he_o that_o judge_v he_o to_o death_n and_o this_o indeed_o be_v a_o roman_a name_n and_o if_o the_o honour_n of_o it_o in_o the_o creed_n will_v do_v they_o any_o service_n let_v they_o make_v their_o best_a of_o it_o but_o however_o this_o advantage_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n have_v get_v by_o it_o that_o the_o new_a roman_a title_n have_v make_v the_o old_a catholic_a title_n seem_v questionable_a to_o many_o and_o now_o so_o great_a be_v the_o audacity_n of_o the_o usurp_a pope_n that_o he_o not_o only_o question_v whether_o any_o christian_n shall_v be_v save_v that_o
believe_v not_o in_o he_o as_o well_o as_o in_o christ_n but_o he_o flat_o deny_v it_o and_o what_o he_o can_v get_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n he_o will_v get_v by_o threaten_v and_o terrible_a word_n to_o affright_v the_o simple_a tell_v they_o that_o protestant_n be_v not_o of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o religion_n nor_o in_o a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n well_o we_o shall_v brief_o prove_v our_o way_n to_o be_v safe_a if_o not_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o perverse_a ambitious_a or_o passionate_a and_o prejudice_v man_n yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o all_o humble_a impartial_a diligent_a person_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o deny_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v know_v it_o and_o do_v not_o stifle_v it_o by_o their_o lust_n or_o imprison_v it_o in_o unrighteousness_n in_o their_o biased_a resolution_n and_o first_o we_o shall_v brief_o open_v the_o term_n by_o religion_n religion_n here_o we_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n de_fw-fr credendis_fw-la &_o agendis_fw-la about_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o practise_v which_o we_o hold_v and_o profess_v as_o of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o injunction_n in_o order_n to_o god_n glory_n and_o our_o salvation_n for_o though_o this_o be_v but_o the_o mean_n towards_o those_o holy_a affection_n and_o practice_n which_o be_v of_o near_a necessity_n to_o our_o salvation_n as_o be_v the_o necessary_a effect_n of_o the_o former_a yet_o be_v it_o not_o this_o late_a bu●_n the_o former_a that_o we_o be_v now_o inquire_v after_o not_o of_o subjective_n but_o objective_a religion_n not_o of_o the_o fides_fw-la quâ_fw-la but_o the_o fides_fw-la quae_fw-la ●creditur_fw-la not_o whether_o we_o be_v true_a to_o our_o religion_n and_o so_o true_o religious_a but_o whether_o we_o be_v of_o the_o true_a religion_n or_o hold_v that_o doctrine_n which_o will_v save_v they_o that_o be_v true_a to_o it_o in_o belief_n and_o practice_n i_o shall_v not_o much_o stop_v the_o plain_a reader_n therefore_o with_o any_o further_a and_o unnecessary_a inquiry_n into_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n religion_n which_o some_o derive_v 1_o a_o relegendo_fw-la some_o 2_o a_o religando_fw-la and_o some_o 3_o a_fw-la relegando_fw-la &_o relinquendo_fw-la but_o as_o long_o as_o we_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o word_n we_o shall_v not_o stick_v at_o the_o etymology_n or_o propriety_n by_o the_o reform_a religion_n we_o mean_v the_o christian_a catholic_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o popery_n and_o so_o by_o this_o word_n we_o do_v distinguish_v our_o church_n from_o the_o roman_a sectary_n for_o it_o be_v not_o every_o reformation_n much_o less_o every_o thing_n so_o call_v that_o here_o we_o have_v respect_n to_o but_o the_o reformation_n by_o which_o we_o cast_v off_o popery_n itself_o which_o because_o it_o be_v in_o one_o country_n do_v by_o a_o solemn_a protestation_n of_o certain_a prince_n and_o city_n against_o popery_n have_v be_v since_o call_v the_o protestant_a reformation_n and_o our_o church_n the_o protestant_a church_n and_o our_o religion_n the_o protestant_a religion_n our_o religion_n be_v call_v catholic_a because_o it_o be_v ●he_v religion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v so_o ●alled_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o it_o be_v universal_a consist_v not_o only_a of_o jew_n and_o their_o proselyte_n as_o heretofore_o nor_o of_o one_o town_n like_o rome_n and_o those_o that_o will_v be_v ●he_n subject_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o town_n as_o the_o papist_n dream_n but_o of_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n hold_v the_o foundation_n or_o point_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o not_o again_o deny_v they_o by_o any_o such_o contradict_a error_n as_o will_v not_o consist_v with_o the_o practical_a belief_n of_o the_o say_a fundamental_o as_o that_o be_v call_v a_o catholic_a epistle_n which_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o not_o to_o any_o one_o person_n or_o people_n so_o be_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o contain_v all_o christian_n as_o austin_n be_v wont_a to_o describe_v it_o against_o the_o donatist_n who_o will_v have_v confine_v it_o to_o the_o adversary_n of_o caecilianus_n and_o follower_n of_o donatus_n in_o africa_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v command_v to_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n so_o do_v we_o by_o the_o christian_a religion_n i_o suppose_v we_o be_v agree_v be_v mean_v the_o religion_n of_o believer_n in_o christ_n or_o that_o whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o prescriber_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o the_o first_o act_n which_o must_v contain_v all_o the_o essential_a part_n though_o it_o may_v possible_o want_v many_o integral_n or_o else_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v the_o christian_a religion_n they_o that_o be_v call_v christ_n disciple_n be_v afterward_o call_v christian_n first_o at_o antioch_n act._n 11.26_o to_o be_v a_o christian_a therefore_o and_o to_o be_v christ_n disciple_n be_v all_o one_o note_v therefore_o that_o as_o the_o word_n religion_n denote_v the_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n and_o way_n of_o salvation_n absolute_o necessary_a so_o it_o be_v but_o one_o in_o all_o the_o worl●_n that_o be_v true_a and_o save_a and_o that_o be_v the_o christian_a religion_n so_o that_o if_o a_o heathen_a jew_n or_o mahometan_a ask_v i_o what_o religion_n i_o be_o of_o in_o opposition_n to_o they_o i_o will_v say_v i_o be_o a_o christian_n and_o not_o only_o that_o i_o be_o a_o protestant_n but_o if_o a_o christian_a ask_v i_o what_o religion_n i_o be_o of_o i_o will_v say_v i_o be_o a_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n for_o such_o a_o question_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o christian_a usual_o imply_v that_o i_o be_o a_o christian_n and_o intend_v the_o discovery_n of_o what_o sort_n or_o party_n of_o christian_n i_o belong_v to_o but_o indeed_o christianity_n be_v not_o many_o but_o one_o and_o therefore_o christian_n as_o christian_n be_v not_o of_o many_o religion_n but_o of_o one_o no_o nor_o christian_n at_o all_o that_o be_v true_o such_o if_o by_o religion_n you_o mean_v a_o system_a of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o main_a necessary_a or_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n or_o conceit_v so_o to_o be_v for_o as_o there_o be_v no_o such_o body_n of_o doctrine_n but_o christ_n so_o no_o man_n that_o be_v indeed_o a_o christian_a can_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v see_v such_o a_o belief_n contradict_v the_o essentia_n of_o christianity_n but_o among_o those_o that_o call_v themselves_o christian_n there_o be_v some_o heretic_n that_o deny_v or_o plain_o subvert_v some_o part_n of_o the_o essential_o of_o christian_a religion_n and_o among_o those_o that_o be_v christian_n some_o have_v such_o dangerous_a corruption_n as_o do_v much_o hazard_v the_o salvation_n and_o tend_v to_o frustrate_v they_o of_o their_o benefit_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o these_o very_a corruption_n they_o entitle_v by_o the_o name_n of_o part_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v in_o which_o sense_n i_o must_v say_v i_o be_o not_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o they_o though_o i_o hold_v the_o same_o christian_a doctrine_n as_o they_o because_o i_o hold_v not_o their_o mixture_n and_o add_v not_o those_o corruptiou_n which_o they_o make_v a_o part_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o name_n protestant_n i_o reject_v not_o because_o it_o be_v take_v up_o on_o a_o just_a occasion_n but_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v too_o extrinsical_a and_o private_a to_o be_v the_o stand_a denomination_n of_o my_o religion_n as_o be_v not_o take_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o from_o a_o occasional_a action_n of_o a_o few_o man_n in_o one_o country_n though_o it_o intimate_v that_o all_o of_o their_o judgement_n in_o all_o other_o country_n do_v virtual_o at_o least_o make_v the_o like_a protestation_n in_o the_o main_a i_o do_v therefore_o rather_o choose_v to_o say_v that_o i_o be_o a_o reform_a catholic_a christian_n and_o when_o i_o call_v myself_o a_o protestant_n this_o be_v my_o meaning_n so_o that_o by_o the_o name_n christian_n which_o express_v all_o my_o religion_n itself_o positive_o consider_v i_o be_o difference_v from_o heathen_n jew_n mahometan_n and_o all_o infidel_n and_o those_o by_o some_o call_v heretic_n who_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n while_o they_o deny_v part_n of_o the_o very_a essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o by_o the_o name_n catholic_a i_o add_v nothing_o positive_a to_o the_o former_a but_o only_o intimate_v that_o i_o be_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o negative_o exclude_v myself_o from_o all_o divide_a
its_o flourish_a in_o the_o apostle_n day_n universality_n comparative_o that_o be_v the_o great_a part_n the_o arrian_n have_v at_o least_o of_o the_o bishop_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o m●llenaries_n with_o many_o such_o like_a may_v plead_v more_o antiquity_n than_o popery_n can_v and_o as_o for_o succession_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o a_o bishop_n or_o church_n in_o the_o line_n of_o succession_n may_v turn_v heretical_a and_o have_v successor_n in_o their_o heresy_n have_v none_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n nor_o alexandria_n antioch_n etc._n etc._n have_v a_o succession_n till_o it_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o heretic_n and_o it_o will_v have_v beeen_n no_o good_a plea_n for_o the_o first_o heretical_a bishop_n or_o church_n to_o plead_v such_o succession_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o succession_n in_o apostolical_a doctrine_n the_o succession_n of_o person_n will_v be_v no_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o soundness_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o for_o the_o minor_a of_o your_o argument_n i_o answer_v 1._o the_o ethiopian_a alexandrian_a and_o other_o church_n can_v as_o true_o boast_v of_o these_o qualification_n as_o rome_n 2._o the_o papist_n lay_v a_o high_a claim_n to_o they_o then_o they_o can_v make_v good_a as_o 1._o i_o have_v show_v already_o how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o unity_n who_o be_v not_o only_o of_o so_o many_o religion_n or_o way_n of_o discipline_n and_o of_o so_o great_a distance_n in_o many_o doctrinal_n as_o the_o controversy_n among_o themselves_o do_v manifest_a but_o also_o be_v so_o disagree_v about_o the_o very_a centre_n of_o their_o union_n their_o infallible_a sovereign_a power_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n or_o both_o beside_o their_o unity_n be_v but_o of_o their_o own_o party_n the_o romanist_n and_o so_o all_o other_o party_n be_v at_o some_o unity_n among_o themselves_o or_o many_o at_o least_o if_o john_n of_o constantinople_n have_v prevent_v the_o pope_n and_o get_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n or_o pope_n as_o he_o do_v by_o composition_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n and_o have_v pretend_v that_o this_o will_v have_v unite_v the_o church_n i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o have_v justify_v his_o cause_n 2._o how_o can_v the_o papist_n for_o shame_n pretend_v to_o universality_n either_o as_o to_o the_o present_a or_o former_a age_n be_v it_o nothing_o that_o all_o the_o ethiopian_a greek_a and_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o of_o their_o party_n beside_o many_o a_o thousand_o more_o or_o will_v they_o arrogant_o condemn_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o heretical_a and_o then_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n do_v they_o not_o learn_v this_o of_o the_o donatist_n but_o what_o be_v become_v of_o their_o modesty_n who_o pretend_v to_o a_o universality_n for_o the_o time_n past_a when_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o their_o present_a belief_n and_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o papist_n know_v and_o reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o world_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n 3._o and_o for_o their_o succession_n we_o undertake_v to_o prove_v it_o interrupt_v long_o ago_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a bishop_n at_o rome_n of_o a_o long_a time_n though_o man_n have_v sit_v there_o that_o be_v choose_v by_o cardinal_n and_o call_v themselves_o bishop_n or_o pope_n yet_o if_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a council_n they_o be_v matter_n utter_o uncapable_a of_o that_o form_n than_o its_o plain_a that_o they_o be_v but_o statue_n and_o have_v but_o the_o name_n without_o the_o thing_n i._n e._n the_o office_n or_o authority_n and_o therefore_o be_v unworthy_a also_o of_o the_o name_n itself_o let_v i_o name_v two_o or_o three_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o bear_v witness_n of_o this_o and_o first_o their_o great_a parasite_n cardinal_n baronius_n say_v add_v a_o 912._o §_o 8._o what_o then_o be_v the_o face_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n how_o exceed_o filthy_a when_o the_o most_o potent_a and_o yet_o most_o sordid_a whore_n do_v rule_n at_o rome_n by_o who_o pleasure_n see_v be_v change_v bishop_n be_v give_v and_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n horrid_a to_o be_v hear_v and_o not_o to_o be_v speak_v their_o sweet_a heart_n or_o mate_n be_v thrust_v into_o peter_n chair_n be_v false_a pope_n who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n but_o only_o for_o the_o mark_v out_o of_o such_o time_n and_o after_o he_o well_o add_v to_o show_v that_o the_o interruption_n be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v only_o in_o the_o succession_n of_o true_a bishop_n and_o what_o kind_n of_o cardinal_n priest_n and_o deacon_n think_v you_o we_o must_v imagine_v that_o these_o monster_n do_v choose_v when_o nothing_o be_v so_o root_v in_o nature_n as_o for_o every_o one_o to_o beget_v his_o like_a see_v more_o in_o baron_n ibid._n platina_n speak_v of_o the_o evil_a of_o those_o time_n the_o benedict_n 4._o say_v that_o by_o ambition_n and_o bribery_n the_o holy_a chair_n of_o peter_n be_v rather_o seize_v on_o then_o possess_v genebrard_n in_o chronolog_n l._n 4._o secul_fw-la 10._o speak_v of_o the_o great_a unhappiness_n of_o that_o age_n say_v that_o in_o this_o one_o thing_n it_o be_v unhappy_a that_o for_o near_o one_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n about_o fifty_o pope_n do_v whole_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o virtue_n of_o their_o ancestor_n be_v apotactici_n apostaticive_a potius_fw-la quam_fw-la apostolici_fw-la disorderly_a and_o apostatical_a rather_o than_o apostolical_a what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o all_o those_o that_o murder_v their_o predecessor_n to_o obtain_v the_o place_n be_v they_o capable_a of_o be_v true_a bishop_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o pope_n silvester_n the_o second_o who_o be_v a_o conjurer_n and_o agree_v with_o the_o devil_n to_o help_v he_o to_o be_v pope_n and_o by_o the_o deceit_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v again_o deprive_v of_o it_o by_o sudden_a death_n do_v the_o devil_n make_v true_a bishop_n of_o conjurer_n i_o know_v the_o deceive_a papist_n will_v make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o we_o say_v of_o their_o pope_n be_v lie_v of_o our_o own_o forge_n but_o man_n that_o have_v eye_n in_o their_o head_n may_v see_v who_o be_v the_o liar_n their_o own_o writer_n do_v common_o affirm_v the_o same_o that_o we_o affirm_v a_o cardinal_n of_o their_o own_o benno_n in_o vita_fw-la hildebrandi_fw-la affirm_v this_o of_o pope_n silvester_n and_o he_o live_v in_o the_o time_n next_o he_o and_o therefore_o may_v know_v platina_n another_o of_o their_o own_o affirm_v in_o vita_fw-la silve_v that_o gesbertus_n impel_v by_o ambition_n and_o devilish_a desire_n of_o rule_n do_v first_o by_o bribery_n or_o simony_n get_v the_o archbishoprike_v of_o rheims_n then_o of_o ravenna_n and_o at_o last_o of_o rome_n the_o devil_n give_v he_o more_o of_o his_o help_n but_o on_o this_o condition_n that_o after_o his_o death_n he_o shall_v be_v whole_o he_o by_o who_o deceit_n he_o have_v obtain_v such_o dignity_n the_o like_a have_v lyra_n in_o gloss_n ad_fw-la cap._n 14._o maccab._n l._n 2._o and_o a_o multitude_n of_o their_o hystorian_n unanimous_o confirm_v it_o yea_o aeneas_n silvius_n who_o be_v a_o pope_n himself_o the_o gest_n be_v council_n basil_n l._n 1._o say_v we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o pope_n marcellinus_n do_v at_o caesar_n command_n offer_v incense_n to_o idol_n and_o that_o another_o which_o be_v a_o great_a and_o more_o horrible_a thing_n do_v come_v to_o be_v pope_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o fraud_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o a_o word_n if_o murderer_n adulterer_n conjurer_n that_o come_v in_o by_o the_o devil_n and_o heretic_n may_v be_v true_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o a_o man_n that_o believe_v not_o the_o pope_n univerversal_a vicarship_n can_v be_v no_o true_a catholic_a christian_n than_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n not_o to_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n than_o not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o then_o it_o be_v to_o bargain_n with_o the_o devil_n or_o be_v a_o murderer_n or_o adulterer_n certain_o these_o man_n be_v as_o uncapable_a of_o be_v true_a bishop_n when_o these_o thing_n be_v once_o public_o know_v of_o they_o at_o least_o as_o a_o mahometan_a will_v be_v and_o therefore_o there_o have_v be_v many_o a_o interruption_n in_o their_o succession_n and_o many_o a_o schism_n there_o have_v be_v wherein_o two_o or_o three_o pope_n have_v reign_v at_o once_o and_o he_o that_o have_v the_o great_a strength_n have_v carry_v it_o when_o his_o right_n be_v not_o the_o great_a query_n whether_o the_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n or_o his_o clergy_n must_v be_v the_o
nothing_o at_o all_o to_o gainsay_v but_o now_o see_v what_o thou_o recite_v be_v not_o canonical_a by_o that_o liberty_n to_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v call_v we_o i_o refuse_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o he_o compare_v it_o to_o peter_n compel_v the_o gentile_n to_o judaize_v gal._n 2._o show_v that_o even_a peter_n shall_v have_v be_v so_o refuse_v in_o error_n the_o word_n of_o austin_n in_o epist_n 19_o ad_fw-la hieron_n be_v common_o cite_v i_o have_v learned_a to_o give_v only_o to_o those_o write_n which_o be_v now_o call_v canonical_a 19_o this_o reverence_n and_o honour_n as_o that_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o none_o of_o they_o err_v in_o writing_n but_o other_o i_o so_o read_v that_o how_o holy_a and_o learned_a soever_o they_o be_v i_o do_v not_o therefore_o think_v it_o true_a because_o they_o so_o judge_v but_o because_o they_o persuade_v i_o either_o by_o those_o canonical_a book_n or_o by_o probable_a reason_n that_o they_o say_v true_a as_o common_o cite_v be_v that_o li._n 3._o cont._n maximin_n arrian_n c._n 14._o pag._n mihi_fw-la 306._o 2._o sed_fw-la nunc_fw-la nec_fw-la ego_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o now_o neither_o aught_o i_o as_o fore-judging_a or_o for_o prejudice_n to_o bring_v forth_o the_o nicene_n council_n nor_o thou_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n i_o be_o not_o bind_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o no●_n thou_o of_o that_o let_v matter_n contend_v with_o matter_n caus●_n with_o cause_n reason_n with_o reason_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v witness_n not_o proper_a to_o either_o of_o we_o but_o common_a to_o both_o it_o be_v too_o long_o to_o recite_v the_o fourti_v part_n which_o augustine_n have_v to_o this_o purpose_n he_o that_o will_v se●_n more_o let_v he_o read_v his_o epist_n 112._o &_o the_o morib_n eccles●_n cathol_n c._n 7._o &_o epist_n 111._o &_o contr._n faustum_n li._n 11._o c._n 5_o &_o de_fw-la trintat_fw-la li._n 3._o etc._n etc._n the_o word_n of_o optatus_n lib._n 5._o advers._fw-la parmen_fw-la ar●_n frequent_o cite_v by_o our_o writer_n which_o be_v thu●_n quaerendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la judices_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o must_v seek_v judge_n parmen_fw-la i●_n christian_n they_o can_v be_v admit_v on_o either_o side_n because_o by_o side_v the_o truth_n be_v hinder_v we_o must_v seek_v a_o judge_n abroad_o or_o without_o if_o a_o pagan_a he_o can_v know_v the_o christian_n secret_n if_o a_o jew_n he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o christian_a baptism_n on_o earth_n there_o can_v no_o judgement_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v find_v we_o must_v seek_v a_o judge_n from_o heaven_n but_o wherefore_o shall_v we_o go_v knock_n at_o heaven_n when_o we_o have_v it_o here_o in_o the_o gospel_n a_o testament_n i_o say_v because_o here_o we_o may_v well_o compare_v earthly_a thing_n to_o heavenly_a be_v such_o as_o that_o a_o man_n that_o have_v many_o son_n do_v command_v they_o all_o himself_o as_o long_o as_o the_o father_n be_v present_a this_o there_o be_v then_o no_o need_n of_o a_o testament_n so_o christ_n as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v present_a on_o earth_n though_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o want_v or_o absent_a command_v the_o apostle_n whatever_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o time_n but_o as_o a_o father_n when_o he_o feel_v himself_o near_o to_o death_n fear_v lest_o after_o his_o death_n the_o btethren_n shall_v unpeaceable_o quarrel_v do_v before_o witness_v put_v his_o will_n out_o of_o his_o die_a breast_n into_o write_n which_o may_v endure_v and_o if_o there_o shall_v rise_v any_o contention_n among_o the_o brethren_n they_o go_v not_o to_o the_o grave_a but_o seek_v the_o testament_n and_o he_o that_o rest_v in_o the_o grave_n do_v silent_o speak_v by_o the_o write_n the_o live_n lord_n who_o the_o testament_n be_v be_v in_o heaven_n let_v his_o will_n therefore_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o gospel_n as_o in_o a_o testament_n the_o author_n of_o the_o imperfect_a work_n on_o mat._n common_o impute_v to_o chrysostome_n homil._n 49._o say_v at_o this_o time_n since_o heresy_n have_v possess_v these_o church_n 29._o there_o can_v be_v no_o proof_n of_o true_a christianity_n nor_o any_o other_o refuge_n of_o christian_n that_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n of_o belief_n but_o the_o divine_a scripture_n for_o before_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o many_o mean_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o be_v gentilism_n but_o now_o it_o be_v by_o no_o way_n know_v to_o they_o that_o will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n how_o therefore_o shall_v he_o that_o will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o know_v it_o but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n one_o will_v think_v this_o be_v plain_a enough_o if_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o all_o write_n as_o well_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o condemn_v their_o cause_n junilius_fw-la ad_fw-la primasium_n ●_o part_n divin_fw-fr legis_fw-la li._n 2._o 29._o qu._n 29_o say_v vnde_fw-la probamus_fw-la libros_fw-la etc._n etc._n how_o do_v we_o prove_v that_o the_o book_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v write_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n many_o way_n of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v the_o truth_n scripture_n itself_o than_o the_o order_n of_o thing_n the_o agreement_n o●_n precept_n the_o manner_n of_o speech_n without_o affectation_n or_o compass_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o word_n ther●_n be_v add_v also_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o writer_n and_o preacher_n that_o mere_a man_n can_v not_o have_v deliver_v such_o divine_a thing_n and_o vile_a man_n such_o high_a thing_n and_o uneloquent_a man_n such_o subtle_a thing_n unless_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o force_n o●_n the_o preach_n of_o it_o which_o it_o have_v when_o it_o be_v preach_v though_o by_o a_o few_o contemn_a man_n hereto_o be_v add_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o contrary_a party_n as_o the_o sibyl_n or_o philosopher_n the_o expulsion_n of_o adversary_n the_o utility_n of_o the_o consequent_n the_o event_n which_o by_o acceptation_n and_o figure_n and_o prediction_n be_v foretell_v and_o last_o the_o miracle_n which_o be_v continual_o wrought_v till_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o nation_n of_o which_o this_o suffice_v for_o the_o next_o miracle_n that_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o say_v chamier_n cite_v this_o passage_n here_o be_v argument_n enough_o to_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n 2._o internal_a and_o external_a but_o no_o mention_n of_o the_o church_n antecedent_n judgement_n to_o determine_v it_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o eusebius_n anstia_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o prove_v the_o scripture_n and_o christian_a religion_n hieromes_n word_n be_v frequent_o cite_v on_o math._n 23._o hoc_fw-la quia_fw-la de_fw-la scripture_n 23._o etc._n etc._n this_o be_v as_o easy_o contemn_v as_o prove_v because_o it_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o on_o isaiah_n 8._o he_o say_v side_n aliquo_fw-la dubitatis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 18._o if_o you_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n know_v what_o be_v write_v if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v doubtful_a rather_o give_v up_o yourselves_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o on_o the_o 86._o psalm_n he_o say_v quamvis_fw-la sanctus_fw-la aliquis_fw-la etc._n etc._n evagr._fw-la though_o there_o be_v some_o saint_n after_o the_o apostle_n never_o so_o eloquent_a yet_o he_o have_v not_o authority_n and_o epist_n ad_fw-la rustic_n since_o covetousness_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n as_o into_o the_o empire_n the_o law_n be_v perish_v from_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o vision_n from_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o same_o hierome_n epist_n ad_fw-la evagr._fw-la fol._n 150._o edit_n basil_n per_fw-la froben_n 1516._o tomo_fw-la 3._o &_o pag._n 329._o edict_n basil_n 1536._o tomo_fw-la 2._o say_v thus_o quid_fw-la ●uim_fw-la facit_fw-la excepta_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la episcopus_fw-la quod_fw-la presbyter_n non_fw-la faciat_fw-la nec_fw-la altera_fw-la romana_fw-la vrbis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la altera_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la existimanda_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la gallia_n &_o britannia_n &_o africa_n offence_n &_o persis_n &_o oriens_fw-la &_o judia_fw-la omnes_fw-la barbarae_fw-la nationes_fw-la unum_fw-la christum_fw-la adorant_v unam_fw-la observant_a regulam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la si_fw-mi authorit●●_n quaritur_fw-la orbis_n major_a est_fw-la urbe_fw-la ubicunque_fw-la fuerit_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sive_fw-la romae_fw-la sive_fw-la fugubii_n sive_fw-la constantinopoli_fw-it sive_fw-la rhegii_fw-la sive_fw-la alexandria_n sive_fw-la tanis_n ejusdem_fw-la meriti_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la est_fw-la &_o sacerdotii_fw-la potentia_fw-la divitiarum_fw-la &_o paupertatis_fw-la humilitas_fw-la vel_fw-la sublimiorem_fw-la vel_fw-la inferiorem_fw-la episcopum_fw-la non_fw-la facit_fw-la caeteram_fw-la omnes_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la successores_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la dicis_fw-la quomodo_fw-la romae_fw-la ad_fw-la testimonium_fw-la diaconi_fw-la